Aqeedah
Aqeedah
Aqeedah
com
Aqeedah 301
Chapter 1
Introduction
Today the human race is confronted with two main contesting ideologies, the
THEISTIC and the ATHEISTIC. The theistic society consisting of monotheists
and polytheists centres around godhood with the grassroot belief in One Supreme
Power, the Only One God, who is the sole planner, designer, creator and sustainer
of the entire universal order. Fundamentally, God is believed to be far above any
creation, par excellence, omnipotent and omniscient, continually existing in the
present which, to any creation, is the period from the long infinite past down to the
farthest infinite future, to which when the very short life of the human being on
earth is compared, the latter would look like an infinitely small and negligible
interval in the vast eternity of the universe. In these contexts, the theists not only
worship God in gratitude for His creative functions and love but also adore Him
for His extreme kindness and consideration, in due measure, to all creatures.
Further, the theists pray to God for granting favours, spiritual guidance in all walks
of life in this world, for protection against evil forces, dangers, committing sins
and for the attainment of perpetual bliss during the life after death. They consider
the few years of the life of the human being on earth as a very short span in his
infinitely long total existence in the universe. On the other hand, the atheistic
society has no concern with what the theists call spiritual values and, thus, has a
purely materialistic appreciation of life. It believes that along with the spontaneous
evolution of the universe, natural laws too were instituted, with the result that in
accordance with these laws, andwithout the need for God, the universe as well as
everything in it, including the human race on earth, continues to function and exist
as entities with no objective or motive behind the creative, living and destructive
processes. The atheist society, thus, has no belief at all in any life after death.
The atheistic society does not also find the need for any religion as it believes
that the society, which is formed by the masses in order to exist as an organized
group, can frame its own norms and codes of law to suit any social order,
determined
as
best,
by
the
majority
of
1
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
people in accordance with the social needs of any epoch. Clear enoughthe social
laws, codes and norms may also change like a weathercock in relation to the will
of the masses in any society, with the result that theoretically it may be expected
that adjacent societies may also have some entirely contradicting laws, codes and
norms according to the will of each majority. As compared to this, the theistic
society generally believes that the universal order in general, and the human race
in particular, having been created by God with specific purpose known to Him
alone, He alone is responsible to direct everything in the universe in courses set
according to the destiny of each through just operation of His own natural laws and
forces. In the same overall plan comes the divine guidance sent by God to the
human race from time to time through selected model leaders with standard divine
norms, codes and laws revealed to them for guiding the human society along just
and even courses, befitting the degree of mental growth of the human being during
the various epochs of its existence in the world.
The theistic society is composed today of adherents and followers of a number
of historic religions or ways of life of which, in alphabetical order, are the
following: Buddhism, Christianity, Communism, Confucianism, Hinduism, Islam;
Jainism, Judaism, Shintoism, Sikhism, Taoism and Zoroastrianism.
Notwithstanding the basic unitary concept of the omnipotent, omnipresent
and. omniscient God and his absolute, uncompromising, super authority in the
philosophy of all religions (for no reason other than perhaps -of having got mixed
up for ages due to association with pagan or animist environments and concepts or
worship, and seeking of spiritual assistance from awe-inspiring creatures and
forces of nature), not only the adherents of some religions but also their scriptures
appear to have included in their basic beliefs and rituals themes concerning
worship of and devotion to several images and idols of deities and demigods, with
some of the specific attributes of the Only One God attached to them. It was, as it
Seems, because of this grave schism that some later religions like Buddhism and
Jainism were initiated without any specific concept of God altogether, but With the
emphasis on doing good, abstaining from sins and undergoing a state of deep
meditation in pursuit of knowledge, enlightenment and redemption of the soul for
good from the active worldly existence. The trinity concept of Christianity, which
attributes some powers of the One God to Jesus Christ, who is considered as the
son of God, also looks like a schism of the Absolute One God concept. There are,
however, some religions like Islam and Judaism that do not reconcile with any
concept that may even slightly undermine the "above the human" aspects of the
One
God.
Under
the
2
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
3
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
quasars and black holes through radio telescopes; viewing the minute atomic
structure through electron microscopes; creating the chlorophyll and many other
natural bioprocesses, and even development of test tube babies; penetration into
some of the hitherto unknown secrets of life itself such as DNA and chromosome
activity and so on; until and unless he is able to understand the very secrets of
creation, if he can! How can, therefore, the intelligent and querying human mind
of the scientist and philosopher come to a dead end of reasoning that all these
intricate complications he finds around and even in himself, all arranged in
systematic and complementary manner with specific duties allocated to each whole
and even to each component, have all come into being without any planning,
designing and purpose at all? When the enlightened human being after all knows
that; being an integral part of the universe, he cannot be forced into action without
a purpose and that every action needs a subject and also an objective, how can one
even think that such a fantastically harmonious universe with millions of different
animates and inanimates, one complementary to the other, should come into being
and exist without a reason or objective and a planner, designer and sustainer?
Because life itself is action and no action may take place without a cause, reason or
motive, the natural corollary of mature and intelligent thought, the human being
cannot but come to the logical conclusion and belief that, after all, there must be an
author, controller and sustainer also for the entire universal order as well as a
specific purpose behind each and every creation. Just to deny this glaring fact
supported by logical and scientific reasoning is to run away, like a coward, from
the realities of life itself. Even acceptance by the atheist of the existence of natural
laws and forces which are responsible for creation, life and death is itself an
indirect admission of the existence of Mighty One God, par excellence!
Really then, this Mighty God must be a magnanimously fantastic entity
reigning eternally over the activities of the universe from its beginning to end,
Himself being far above time, matter, energy, space and any other limited aspects
that are built into any component or constituent constituting the universe itself in
limited space, time, matter and energy segments of the infinitely infinite space and
time. It is not, thus, surprising that in spite of the emphatic superficial negation of
God by the atheistic society, it too is indirectly obliged to recognise the existence
of the Supreme Power, God, by conceding the fact that creation, existence and
destruction of everything in the universe take place in accordance with the "law of
nature," although it is able to define neither "nature" nor explain to the satisfaction
of
conscience
4
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
and science who the author of this "nature" is, how it came into being and for what
purpose!
Nevertheless, it is agreed by all that the materialistic purpose of religions and
even the Marxist, Communist and Socialistic way of life, is to evolve a peaceful,
content and progressive multiracial world society in which each individual is
capable of fulfilling the needs of his own short life on earth without obstructing
similarly diverse but orderly lives of his fellow beings and, as a social creature, to
be complementary to each other. Naturally, essential laws of conduct of such a
way of life must be internationally applicable to all societies of the world at any
time, if international brotherhood is to be the aim. Therefore, if we may find a
religion with a way of enabling the fully developed human beings of today,
tomorrow and future to set up a world order from which enmity, greed, poverty,
hunger, hatred, jealousy, rivalry, oppression, exploitation and so on are outlawed
and, instead, human equality and justice irrespective of considerations of race,
prejudice or colour, prosperity and contentment for each individual, feeling of
brotherhood among each other and so on are the established order of the day based
on the lofty ideal of "one for all and all for one, then, cannot such a way of life,
adopted on a world basis, be responsible for landing the human race into the
civilization of the proverbial millennium enabling not only the East to meet the
West but also to make every one of the human race see eye to eye in order to forge
ahead as one nation for preserving the human civilization of today and to march
forward to a more progressive future?
Of course so, if there is one, but who knows really? The search is worthwhile
because, unless we are soon able to identify one, no one is sure of even
preservation of the present great human civilization of science and technology, for
which, to reach the state of art found today, how much hard and dedicated work of
how many thousands of persons for how many thousands of years has been
responsible, no one really knows! But one thing is quite clear: the only way of life
satisfying the need of today, tomorrow and future must be motivated by incentives
and rewards materially, morally and spiritually because motivation for work is
produced by incentives and rewards only, an aspect built into the fundamental
specification of human nature itself. Any prescription not recognising this
important aspect of life is bound to fail in the life-styles of human beings. This is
what is exactly happening to the latest of the ways of life, Communism, in a life
span of six and a half decades in the U.S.S.R under rigid, totalitarian party control
of social, economic and political life. Complete equality in every respect is
something against very nature itself. Mountains, valleys, rivers, seas,
5
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
oceans, forests, plains, deserts, which being all different are but complementary to
one another to provide a balanced, contrasting, harmonious whole. As food is not
enjoyable without hunger, it is but natural that in practice for those who do not get
hungry, starvation is introduced artificially in order to produce hunger. Unless
there is heat, the beauty of a cool breeze cannot be enjoyed. Thus, in variety there
is enjoyment. Materialistic, moral and spiritual values all resonate with this
important aspect of life and the universe itself. Therefore, in actual human life too
complete equality in every aspect seems to be unreal. Rich and poor must exist
together but complementary to each other. While the poor expects brotherly
consideration of the rich, the former must be thankful to the latter. Such a practical
and real philosophy in phase with the great harmony of nature alone can survive
the test of all times and people. ln it there is motivation and hope materially,
morally and spiritually. Anything against this must fail in practice.
Further, the philosophy and way of life that we are looking for must have
taken into consideration one of the important characteristics of human beings:
mankind is prone to commission of mistakes and omissions in their lives both
knowingly and unknowingly. Therefore, the said philosophy and way of life must
be able to hold out to them hope of a clean future even in the event of committing
mistakes knowingly or unknowingly. To err is human and to forgive divine.
Although the responsibility for all actions of man, no doubt, is vested in man
himself because of the discriminative and decisive powers vested in him, all
opportunity should also be extended to him for genuine repentance to God after
making amends for any injustices committed by him to another. Even in scientific
terms, quality and purity of abstract things like minerals, gold and water are
relative with reference to the environments and the degree of attainability.
Therefore it is not just that the human being is provided the hope of complete
redemption from sins only when he becomes one hundred percent pure, not that he
is led to believe that such a state is unobtainable until he suffers all the
consequences of his sins and mistakes during his unlimited period of life cycles on
earth itself without the hope of any pardon. Similarly, the hope extended to any
one that all his mistakes and sins shall be condoned or forgiven the moment he
only believes in a certain philosophy is also not a reasonable formula either,
because then again lawful laxities causing confusion in the organised society may
result. What should then satisfy the intelligent human being is a philosophy and
way of life where the spiritual relationship between man and God is like the one
between a loving child and his parents, wherein the all knowing and all powerful
God
is
not
only
compassionate,
understanding
6
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
and loving, but also ready to excuse as well as to punish on the merits of each case.
Thereby is projected the qualities of an ideal God who is ever ready to appreciate
good work and extend pardon whenever a genuine supplicant tenders sincere
apology with proper amends, so that each human being is adjudged on merits of a
final weighted balance sheet of good and bad. As this philosophy and way of life
should then look like a standard, it may be adopted by all people of the world at all
times, and each individual may fulfil his responsibility to self, fellow beings,
society and to God, one not interfering with another.
Unfortunately, what has been found so far is that each religion, ideology and
way of life was being propagated by its respective adherents and followers as the
best one for attaining the golden age of universal prosperity and peace in this
world as well as the immortal life after union with the Godly environment in the
hereafter. This was done without carefully analysing the philosophies and ways of
life of all existing religions including their own to be quite sure that theirs is the
best of all for the evolution of a balanced material, moral and spiritual world
society which may provide opportunity to attain the two goals. During the process,
jealousy, hatred, perpetual enmity and rivalry are all let loose to become the
winner. Finally, in order to appease the human ego, many a time the use of force
and even total war had been resorted to at great cost and destruction as is testified
by history. Even today, when the human race has attained scientific and
technological progress more than ever before as the result of enviable mental
development, the two contesting ideologies of the world, the so-called capitalistic
nations on the one hand and the totalitarian communist nations on the other, are
vying with each other in rivalry to prove to each other and to the rest of the world,
through even the show of might and destruction, that the economic, social and
political methods of their respective blocs is the better for the creation of a just
world order. In this process, in order to excel one another, they are both busy
stockpiling destructive weapons, including the nuclear arms of all sorts, with the
objective being none other than a confrontation leading to nothing but obliteration
of the human race itself. Elsewhere we find segregated groups called the rich
nations, the poor nations, the developed nations, the developing nations and even
the nations under the poverty line, all consisting of people of the same human race
living in this very world and in this highly developed century. It is also a
continuous cry of the special agencies of the United Nations Organisation and the
rich as well as the poor nations that not only hunger and poverty of the people of
all nations must be eradicated but also that the glaring economic disparity between
the
rich
and
the
7
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
poor nations must be reduced by providing more economic aid and assistance,
better distribution of wealth and transfer of technology. Still, instances are not few
where people die in millions in abject poverty due to shortages of food, drinking
water and disease in many parts of the world. On the other side of the living
picture of the world we find that poverty exists even amidst the rich nations and
that shortages of food as well as many other consumer goods are a usual feature in
the vast lands of the propagators of the newest way of life, Communism, which
itself promised more than six decades ago attainment of the millennium through
their fascist ways. At the same time what is shocking, indeed, is that the armament
race on which both the blocs are engaged at fantastic costs is carried on at the
expense of the economic uplift of their own poor people. It is not rare that even
poor countries that are about or under the so-called poverty line also indulge in the
same satanic luxury of amassing destructive weapons and arms on the false pretext
of security and self defence when their own peoples are starving and the
governments of the concerned countries are engaged in the exercise of passing
around the miserable hat, seeking charity, aid and loans every year for national
development and even to finance payment of interests and instalments of existing
huge loans. Is it not horrible to think that we are living in a world where beggary is
resorted to as well as encouraged or even condoned in order to live in luxury and
to cause destruction an affront to human dignity! Elsewhere, we also find that the
rich and developing nations often indulge in the sale of arms to such poor nations,
extending huge aids and credits in preference to assistance in nation-building
projects dedicated to their economic uplift. If only a part of the total annual
expenditure incurred on amassing and the sale of arms and weapons were utilised
for the economic uplift of the poor peoples in the world, it could emphatically be
stated that the economic level of each of the more than five billion human beings
existing today could have risen a few thousands of dollars, which may be much
much above the poverty line in any country indeed. On the other hand, the human
race has become so cruel today that while millions die of hunger and malnutrition
in many parts of the world valuable food grains are wantonly destroyed by
dumping them in the sea in the, name of stabilization of home markets. All these
have been happening when everyone claims to possess and profess codes of
religious and other ways of life that are loudly claimed to have been geared
towards establishment of a true welfare state! Can deceit have no end in sight?
Why all this confusion? Has there been so far no single religion or way of life
that
could
radically
transform
the
conduct
of
the
indi-
8
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
vidual, the community, the nation and the world? May there be one, which has not
yet been brought to the notice of the critical man of today, probably? That is why,
perhaps, Karl Marx and Lenin were prompted to evolve the entirely new Marxism
independently. But, as is clear from history, many a reformer and prophet having
come and gone and vast areas of the world having today come under the influence
of one or more religions, could it not be probably that at least one among them
could be capable of assisting us to evolve the era of peace and plenty? But then,
during these days of acute materialism, while most of the followers of any
particular religion themselves do not care to know why they continue to follow the
religions of their forefathers, yet there are many others who follow the religion of
their forefathers blindly, without knowing much of the basic philosophy of their
own religion. Adherence to religions has today, thus, become for most people a
life-style of rituals and unquestionable beliefs, some of which appear to be so
unreasonable that no reconciliation is possible with them for an enlightened person
of this century. Nothing other than custom, personal ego and fear of estrangement
from existing society force such people to stick to the religion of the parents and
grandparents. It is also a pity that except from hearsay most of the missionaries of
some religions not having firsthand and in--depth knowledge of other important
living religions that bind the life-styles of hundreds of millions human beings to
their folds, still claim theirs to be the best, although reason and logic require that
nothing may be designated as the best until it is so proven as a result of comparing
all similar ones. There are also many who take the easy course in agreeing that all
religions lead to the same ultimate end without caring to study them all in any
depth for the simple reason that while wanting to remain in the traditional society,
neither do they want to contradict their own or other religions nor, for fear of
expulsion and further trouble, do they want to say anything in praise of other
religions. There is yet another class that, having found that their own religion not
only prevents free thinking but that some of its philosophies are also against some
basic social, economic and scientific concepts of life as required by the progressive
society, comes to the illogical conclusion that all religions similarly thwart the
growth of progressive societies and therefore come to the wrong decision that
religion is not a necessary requirement of the progressive society. Such people fall
easy prey to materialism and denounce all religions- without having a definite idea
of any religion at all. With no iota of spiritual values, thus they fall into the
euphoria of permissiveness, laxity and contempt for any organized society founded
on the basis of traditions of any religion. Marxism, with its
9
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
temporary halo being the only course open to them, they soon substitute Marxist
principles for religion as a means to attaining the millennium during the lifetime.
At the same time, rivalry continues between the exponents of each way of life,
mostly without knowing the basic principles and philosophies of each other. Thus,
in fact, it is not religions that are the causes for enmity in societies but it is the lack
of detailed knowledge about their own religion and other religions. Most of the
religious controversies are thus the creation of either hearsay, lack of information
or ignorance.
What is then the solution? The only one is to critically study one's own
religion along with other important existing religions in order to enable the prying
and hopeful human mind to be satisfied whether one or the other of the existing
religions fulfils the requirements and aspirations of the individual as well as the
society in any time and place. But, to study the different religions one must have
all the scriptures, treatises and literatures on each of them. These are, however, so
many in number that a full lifetime may be insufficient to go through them
properly. Moreover, there are so many books written by different authors on every
religion on earth, each with his own different egoistic explanations and
interpretations that, unless one engages in the pursuit of going through most of
them, leaving aside his day to day work of eking out a bare living for him and his
family, there can be no way of knowing what basic philosophy and way of life has
been, in fact, advocated by each. Unfortunately, as it appears, no one has so far
ventured to produce one single treatise on the comparative study of existing
religions which could readily be referred to for this purpose, enabling a busy
person to lay his hands on any desired religious scripture that interested him and
guiding him to know more about it through further detailed study. Therefore,
having had the advantage of studying the various existing religions in-depth as
well as having had the opportunity of associating with their adherents in many
parts of the world and understanding their philosophies, scriptures, ways of life
and rituals, through this treatise I have ventured to fill this important gap in the
cultural evolution of the human race which, unfortunately, in this century of
unprecedented advancement in the fields of science and technology due to its
having attained mental maturity a long time ago, has already started its course
toward moral and spiritual bankruptcy caused by intense materialism and neglect
of spiritual values altogether.
The world today has come almost to the brink of a terrible catastrophe.
Nations, countries and even individuals have begun doubting the sincerity of each
other
and,
for
the
absolute
control
of
only
10
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
materialistic values; the standard moral values based on spiritual aspect are being
discarded ruthlessly. The feared total holocaust could be a reality any moment if,
unfortunately, the finger of one of the controlling human beings goes to the red
button that can order the third world war by the unleashing of the formidable
conventional and nuclear warheads kept ready everywhere on and over the globe.
In these days of indecision and confusion only a one world order, based on
internationally applicable ways of life derived from just moral values built on
spiritual foundation, giving both the human being and the rest of the universe their
due respective positions, as well as meaning, and fully dedicated to none other than
the Supreme Almighty One God of the universe, can be of any help to the human
race wandering about and drifting in search of the right spiritual values. Such a life
of course will be able to hold ground only if it is governed by a complete code of
life which is applicable to all times and generations so as to enable the human
being to live in the materialistic temporary home of earth as a fit creature in any
era while trying to consolidate his ultimate position in the life after death
somewhere in the universe in some other unknown form after attaining immortality
and union with the Godly environment to live forever. Without hope of such a final
goal, the human being cannot remain mentally at ease. Such an ideal worldly life
certainly can be enjoyable only if self as well as environments near and far on
earth all enjoy the bounties of God in reasonable measure and sing God's praises in
gratitude and for guidance together, each individual having gotten adjusted
mutually in honourable places of duty in the community of contemporary human
society, supplementing each other's efforts. Does not each one of us long eagerly
for the arrival of that day? Let me therefore try to assist my contemporaries to
know whether there is any such super philosophy and way of life available today
to save the human race. This is the motive that has prompted me to write this
unique treatise.
Under the circumstances, I request the reader to cast off his erstwhile ego
Which has so far been compelling him to believe that his own way of life, though
full of pitfalls and insufficiencies, has been the best unless he is too sure of it as the
result of having learned about the philosophies and ways of life advocated by other
religions. I am sure that no one can afford to come to that conclusion until he has
the full grasp of the philosophies of all other existing religions. What I have
therefore tried to do is to assist the reader to understand and compare each of the
following religions existing today from the outline of their respective philosophies,
beliefs, codes, rituals and other aspects, allocating a chapter to each: Buddhism,
Christianity,
Confucianism,
11
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
12
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
If the answer to each is a sincere and honest YES, then of course stick to it; if not,
it is high time that one begins to search for a more hopeful, meaningful, and
rewarding philosophy as well as way of life with the assistance of this treatise. I
am sure that one should be able to find a model from the range of important living
religions which are discussed in the following pages fully satisfying the modern
human being of today as well as the future.
I have tried to outline each religion dispassionately without any distorted
version and strictly according to what is found in the scriptures of each. However,
in
order
to
guide
the
inquisitive
reader,
I
have
13
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
given a few warranted comments here and there whenever any constructive
criticism is called for judiciously. Without this such a unique treatise comparing
the various prime religions under the roof of one book may not be able to do full
justice to the subject. In some chapters, I have recapitulated or even repeated some
facts, sometimes a few times, because without them the right theme could not have
been highlighted otherwise in such manner that the crux of the argument may be
understood clearly. Most of the scriptures also repeat one and the same idea or
directive many times for this same reason. Therefore, being an exposition of what
is stated in the various scriptures, full justice to the comparative study of the
subject is not possible without such repetitions of essential themes at appropriate
places. This is particularly true when discussing the two sister religions Judaism
and Christianity, especially because the Old Testament, which is the first part of
the Christian Bible is more or less the Pentateuch of the Jews. Of necessity I have
had to apologise for this action. No doubt the readers are quite intelligent enough
to draw their own conclusions as well as to understand the sincerity of the author's
purpose. On the basis of such criticisms it may be easier for the reader to study the
relevant scriptures in the original for drawing his own independent and wise
conclusions. However, at the end of the treatise, is allocated one chapter for
summarising and comparing all the religions and ways of life discussed in the
earlier chapters against such universal standards of belief, behaviour and action
as are in accordance with the expectations of the developed human being of this
century as well as the future for the evolution of a classless society based on one
world order for the entire human race in order that it may live such a meaningful
life in this material world as may enable it to enjoy also just rewards during its
immortal life after death as promised by most of the religions. Although the
modern human being has become more- materialistic than, perhaps, ever before in
his long history, he has also become more conscious of the dire necessity of
strengthening his spiritual aspect in such manner that not only may it be in
harmony with nature as well as proven scientific facts from time to time but, may
also provide the required motivation for him to work hand in hand with fellow
beings discarding prejudices based on race, caste, colour, class, profession and
wealth for the attainment of universal happiness through love and contentment.
This certainly demands a practical and dynamic universal philosophy and way of
life that integrates materialism with moral values derived from spiritual
consciousness. It must not be lost sight of that a philosophy and way of life that is
intended for the guidance of the human race must be in tune with all aspects of just
human
behaviour
14
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
arising out of the specification of human creation and, of course, in harmony with
the natural laws governing the universe in general and the earth in particular. God,
the Only One, alone being the sole author of these laws, only such a philosophy
and way of life that has been proven to have been given by Him through an
enlightened leader may alone satisfy the requirement. It is also not difficult to
realize that this model leader must essentially be none other than a human being,
for the simple reason that if he were, instead, an angel, or a supposed incarnation
or son of God, obviously it could not be possible for the ordinary human beings to
follow such a superhuman being. Such a divine philosophy and way of life given
by God to the human race at a time when it had attained mental maturity, then,
may alone claim universalism, applicable to us today as well as to the human
beings of tomorrow.
One cannot fail to notice that it is a modern necessity that even moral
standards to be applied to any society where materialistic outlook on life prevails
must receive the approval of the majority of its masses of people; even in countries
that claim to be the defenders of certain faiths it is so. However, that the will of the
majority may not necessarily be the right one for all persons morally, socially and
spiritually, is demonstrated by national consensus on, say, pornography,
homosexuality, premarital sex between consenting adults and so on which, while
in some countries are quite legal, are illegal in other countries according to the will
of the majority, although according to the religions of the very same people they
are highly objectionable. Not only that: How can the same aspect in the life of a
sane and healthy human being be legal as well as illegal at the same time in two
different countries? Similarly, the will of the majority of the people in the same
country can make something legal today and illegal tomorrow, even though this
may affect the existing social structure and balance. However, the standard
universal morality for the developed human being, as dictated by God's law based
on spiritual values, being fit for application at any time can never change like a
weathercock. Therefore, such divine laws alone can serve the humanity of today
and the future on an international basis. This is so because God's law, intended for
the human being in his mature state of evolution, must have been framed by Him
with due consideration of what is ultimately good or bad for him after having taken
into account the full specification of his creation and life in all aspects of time,
matter and space which God, his creator, alone is aware of.
Further, today when the human being has achieved mental maturity, why
should not the laws concerning basic social and moral values
15
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
be also standard for all time for the entire human race, thereby leaving no necessity
to change them to suit local requirements as considered necessary by the fancies of
individuals? Such standardisation can be achieved only if the conduct of human
beings is based on spiritual values and all the needed codes and laws are derived
from a divine scripture revealed at a period when man had attained mental
maturity. Such laws and codes as can stand the test of all time can be easily
identified as God's final laws.
The opinions and conclusions drawn in the final chapter of this book are,
however, my own, based on national and international thought of the modern age
after studying what are contained in the scriptures of the various religions. No
doubt others may agree to differ with my thoughts, points of view, and
conclusions, but none, perhaps, can be so unfair as to contradict them for the
reason that the findings are based on truth, logical and scientific. For one, the
author cannot even think of a situation in which only part of the moral and social
codes and injunctions of a so-called divine scripture are acceptable
because they suit him, while the rest are rejected on the ground that they cannot be
either considered logical or applied with reason in modern times. If it is so, then it
can not any longer claim to be a final and complete divine scripture. Either the
whole must be accepted or rejected, as far as the fundamentals at least are
concerned, not partly either, the criterion being that if the scripture is absolutely
divine in nature and intended for the all time guidance of the human being, all of it
must be applicable for any time and place today as well as in the future. Thus, if
any way of life does not appeal to any international model it is not to be accepted
as a standard.
In the past history of mankind, particularly after the eighth century C.E.,
instances were many when reformers, brought up under strict influences of their
own religions, have had the opportunity to compare other more dynamic religions
with their own. Having found that some of the basic philosophies and ways of life
of their own religions, as accepted for centuries under scriptural authority, had
grave shortcomings which made them untenable for the age, they launched
reformist movements to make them more scientific in approach, dynamic and
appealing to the questioning- contemporary generations by adapting some few
good aspects of other religions into their own. At the same time, under the
influence of personal ego and mainly to prevent erosion of their own religion by
others, they went on advocating all their life that all religions led man to the same
goal, as found by them from supposed enlightenments from none other than God,
during tranced meditations, not realising the basic fact that all means may not
neces-
16
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
sarily lead to the same end. The civilization of the only one man and one woman
having developed from primitiveness over thousands of years to what it is today,
with perhaps five billion souls, naturally, the divine guidance too must have kept
pace with the development of the human intellect from time to time in a step by
step process indeed. It is only a logical approach.to the problem that what laws and
codes of behaviour had been applicable to the early generations did need
modifications for application to the civilized man of later times. The concept of
incarnations in Hindu philosophy as well as the concept of divine revelations sent
through various prophets in Jewish, Christian and Muslim philosophies point to
this essential feature in the spiritual relationship between. God and the human
being. It is also not a secret that the learned people of some of the ancient religions
did hold the belief that according to their scriptures and sacred documents "the
Kalki," ''the Comforter' and "the promised Messiah" are yet to arrive with divine
revelations to finally guide the human race. However, when it will be is not known
to them. There are ample proofs to show that the old philosophies and ways of
human life having gotten either polluted over the ages or been proven insufficient
to the successive genarations, did need radical changes in them for application to
the developed race of the later times. It is therefore just another logical conclusion
that every time new laws are brought, the old ones become obsolete and that such a
step by step process must have been taking place from time to time also in the field
of divine guidance to man since his arrival on earth. Naturally, it is to be expected
that the complete guidance must also have thus come to the human race in the
shape of a final revelation applicable for all time to guide its social, moral and
spiritual growth, because the human intellect attained full growth a long time ago.
If we can identify such a final revelation, why not accept it, better late than never,
rather than carrying out fruitless piecemeal, incomplete repairs to any existing
ones? However, without making genuine efforts to know if such a new universal
philosophy, law and way of life that may be suitable to the developed human
beings of the modern age has already been brought by the expected Kalki,
Comforter or the promised Messiah and so on, as the case may be, as found in the
scriptures and ways of life of one of the existing modern prime religions, these
reformers, instead, tried without divine sanction in vain to modify some of their
outdated life-styles and philosophy by adopting bits and pieces from other more
modern religions. Having spent a whole lifetime dedicated to bringing about a
renaissance among co-religionists through incongruent adaptations from other
religions, such unauthorised reformers had, however, ultimately to leave this world
without
achieving
17
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
anything more than getting themselves enshrined as another diety for worship by
followers, and dividing the society further, rather than unifyiilg even followers of
one and the same religion.
Let us not therefore repeat the same mistake. Truth is one and the royal road
to it should also be only one. Anyone neglecting the royal road and trying to
approach the truth from other routes, in all probability, may be left with the
possibility of undergoing much sufferings before rejoining the royal road later, or
even unattainability of the objective. Any attempt to modify an existing way of life
by the removal of some of the major inconsistencies, contradictions or untenable
concepts in order to make it more palatable in preference to acceptance of the ideal
one straightaway with courage is a limited way of approach leading to failure again
later because history may repeat itself. Tolerance, however, is something entirely
different from a state of acceptance of another untenable view. Excessive tolerance
too may lead to catastrophe because was it not in the same way that the
superpowers started stockpiling and deploying even nuclear weapons in the name
of tolerance and peaceful coexistence, in spite of the fact that the two opposing
types of philosophy and different ways of life have so much against one another
that the pressure must ultimately make the shells explode, both being all the time
fully aware of the ghastly consequences about which there are not two opinions.
So, the search to spot the ideal philosopby and way of life must be on relentlessly.
This treatise is the product of a further amplification and rearrangement of the.
Material contained in the very many notes that were made by the author during his
intense research and study of the various religions of this century for more than
three decades and purely for his own satisfaction. Prior to that, as the result of
having been brought up in Orthodox religious society of the then British Malabar
of South India during the third and fourth decades of this century when that area
was noted for its religious tolerance, and having had the opportunity to receive an
excellent early education up to the university level along with multireligions
students as well as a teaching population, it had been his rare privilege to acquire
basic knowledge of the philosophies of various religions in general and of
Buddhism, Christianity, Hinduism, Judaism and Islam in particular through their
respective holy books, scriptures and writing of very many authors and theologians
as well as the gathering of first hand knowledge of the ways of life as preached by
their clergies and followed by their adherents. In later years, he observed at close
quarters how the growth of acute liberalism, communism, permissiveness,
secularism and "hippism" had made deep inroads into the life-styles of even
immature
youngsters
18
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
and teenagers all over the world due to the neglect of spiritual values. As a result
of acute materialistic thinking, family cohesion, respect for elders and older
concepts of moral values had almost broken down causing social problems of great
magnitude everywhere. With the deteriorating world condition, the ideas and
thoughts found in these pages arose in, the alarmed mind of the author.
Further, the manner in which the Anglican Church of England had
commenced to succumb to the effects of this acute materialism, as shown by the
auctioning or selling of the churches for raising money to spend on other purposes
for the reason that they continued to remain infrequented by religious devotees,
kept him more and more concerned at the extent of spiritual deprivation that had
set in there and of its ill effects if the same started to spread as a contagion to the
rest of the world also. This prompted the author to put together all his previous
notes and knowledge on the subject to form this treatise with the hope that his
ideas and thoughts may provide food for thought for his twentieth century
contemporaries, many of whom have been drifting in search of a philosophy and
way of life sufficient to rescue them from their present predicament of having been
engulfed by acute materialism devoid of any spiritual values altogether. As Bishop
Butler wondered if an entire nation could go mad, is it also possible to visualise
that the bulk of the civilized human race of this unique century can go acutely
materialistic, ignoring its All Powerful Creator and Sustainer, God? For, if it so
happened, what could then be the exemplary divine punishment for such a lot of
ungrateful human beings of this age of unprecedented progress?
As seen from the bibliography at the end, the author has taken great pains to
refer to very many books and literatures over decades for gathering the variety of
information contained in this book. Some of the references were in his possession,
others loaned to him by friends and quite a lot read during his frequent visits to the
United Kingdom
from the vast treasure houses of rare books which exist in British libraries in
England and libraries of the British Council and United States Information Centers
in many countries, some of these rare books not being obtainable elsewhere
because they were either extinct or out of print for a long time.
Certainly, some views and extracts from the publications of the many authors
as shown in the long list of bibliography at the end of the book have found places
of honor in this study as excerpts. The author is grateful for having gotten the
opportunity to enrich his knowledge quite appreciably on account of the valuable
information contained in them. It is a statement of fact that without them it should
not
have
19
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
20
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Chapter 2
Buddhism
Hindus and their scriptures consider Buddha as the ninth incarnation of one of their
trinity gods, Vishnu. Like Jainism and Sikhism, Buddhism may also be considered
an adaptation of Hinduism because some of the basic concepts of Hindu
philosophy such as Samsara, Karma, Yoga, Nirvana and so on exist in Buddhism
as well. No doubt, many a Hindu philosopher, therefore, consider Buddha as yet
another reformer of Hinduism who came as the Buddha ,incarnation of Vishnu,
was born as a Hindu, died as a Hindu, and lived the life of a Hindu. However,
Buddhism has also some important aspects radically different from the Vedic and
Epic Hindu philosophy in the form of almost a negation of gods, deities, caste
system, sacrifice and so on, and in fraternization with other regional philosophies
or ways of life it has evolved a distinct culture separate from the ways of Hindu for
a large cross-section of people in Sri Lanka, Burma, Malaysia, Thailand,
Cambodia, Vietnam, China, Korea, Japan and even India.
As will be seen from the life history of Buddha, a major part of his life had
been a struggle, first to find the Noble Truths" of causation and cessation of pain
on the one hand and to find a way to get rid of the endless and horrible Samsara
(rebirth) cycle, which was the only Hindu way of purifying the soul of the sins
committed through Karma which, as per the Bhagavat Geetha, "Even God is
incapable of changing because this is the law ordained by Him dependant on the
duties (Dharmas) of four castes, born of nature. After a struggle of seven years,
during which period Gautama Buddha subjected himself to the renunciation
advocated by Geetha and even the torture of the Vedas, he had to return
disappointed, having fallen acutely ill. However, on regaining his health, as the
result of further renunciation and yoga meditation under a bodhi tree, he was able
to find out not only the "Noble Truths," but also the way for complete redemption
called Nirvana (union of the soul with the Supreme Essence) through the process
of Samadhi (blowing out). Nevertheless, in the end he still had no way out other
than resigning himself to the old philosophy of rebirth (Samsara) in cases where
the Nirvana was not attained due to sins committed during any
21
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
particular life term. In other words, in effect, it was acceptance of the two
contradictory philosophies, one being that God redeems one of sins as the result of
renunciation, penance and good work, and the other being that redemption is not
possible except through suffering in time, space and effect the result of Karma,
final redemption being only possible through a spotless life cycle, during which the
full effects of past sins have to be born out, which is the same as the Hindu
Samsara philosophy itself. Perhaps, it was due to this very confusion that Buddha
could not specifically either affirm or deny the existence of God or even a life after
death, as will be seen later in these pages.
22
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
by the Vedas particularly to the two higher castes. Having received enlightenment
and wisdom, Buddha became actively involved in devising a strict program of
monastic life for his disciples to obtain supervised training in the act of leading a
life of renunciation. The disciples were to practice yoga to obtain wisdom and
knowledge in order to enable them to lead a faultless life aimed at the attainment
of Nirvana or redemption by cutting off the rebirth cycle altogether through a
"union with the Supreme Essence" or "blowing out." Having led a large following,
Buddha died at the age of eighty, exhorting his disciples to strive after salvation
energetically because all that is composed is liable to decay " According to the
traditions as well as The Dipavasma, a Pall chronicle of the forth century C.E.
containing accounts of the Magadha kings of India from Buddha to Ashoka, the
death of Buddha is assessed between 544 and 483 B.C.E. His departure for the
forest life is said to have been at the age of twenty-nine and he is supposed to have
received the enlightenment at the age of thirty-five. For forty-five years he is said
to have wandered from place to place preaching his doctrine of Dharma (duty) to
monks, nuns and people at large and is said to have permitted women to join the
order of nuns, on equal status with men, for the first time in the social and religious
life of India.
Teachings of Buddha
The teachings of Buddha appear to have been, in the beginning, preserved in
the memory of Buddhist monks over the ages. These had been put into the present
form of scripture after the split of the Buddhists into two sects, Mahayana (The
Great Vehicle) and Hinyana (The Little Vehicle). One of these collections, known
as The Canon of the Theravidins (The School of the Elders) appears to exist now in
Pali, a living language of Sri Lanka (Old Ceylon) introduced first into that country
by Buddhist missionaries of the third century B.C.E. and during the spread of
Buddhism to Burma and Siam; it is said to have been reduced to writing in Ceylon
during the first century CE. In all old schools of Buddhism, the Canon exists in the
form of" Tripitaka"(The Three fold Basket), consisting of:
-
23
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Other Canons that existed in Buddhist schools of northern India are known in
Chinese and Tibetan translations of the Sanskrit text which is now lost. There are
some dissimilarities between the Canons of the northern Indian schools and the
southern Pali schools, the latter being current in Siam, Cambodia, Burma, Thailand
and Sri Lanka. This could have been the result of the spread of the teachings
orally in widely separated communities on the one hand and due to the cultural
differences between the different races on the other, resulting in the differences
showing up, when they were finally written down by scholars with characteristic
differences in interpretations.
Aqeedah 301
sary and essential training and control over the mind with the ultimate object of
this doctrine in view. He had realized that the human mind and actions can get
channelled away from the lures of the worldly life only under the influence of a
tightly disciplined training, and therefore the effort towards finding the truth of
redemption and final Nirvana may best be possible only through the disciplined
life of a recluse. Although it appeared to Buddha that he had found a way for the
redemption of the human soul that was much better than what the caste-ridden
contemporary Hindu philosophy advocated, nevertheless, as he was not a prophet
of God who alone could know through God's revelation what the purpose and
destiny of man were and how best the desired redemption could be obtained, there
was no wonder that in the end he also got confused on the issue. He had neither
claimed to be an incarnation nor a prophet. That living the life of recluse and
denying the world altogether cannot be the right course for the human being should
be clear from the fact that if everyone in the world opted for this course as
prescribed by Buddha for seeking redemption, the entire world must have come to
a dead stop, as far as human activity is concerned a long time ago! Instead, it may
be conceded readily that the right philosophy for mankind should be the one that
can extend the hope of redemption of the soul through a middle- course life in the
world because, after all, everyone has to dwell on the earth for a specified time
doing his bit of duty and turning the wheel of time for the benefit of society.
Nevertheless, Buddhas search for truth convinced him of the practical philosophy
of life that the Middle Course was the only way to attain Nirvana by the
Thathagata-the Buddha-and that the way to receive the enlightenment consisted,
according to him, in the knowledge of the following four Truths:
-
The first truth is the noble truth of pain: birth is pain, old age is pain,
sickness is pain and death is pain, the five aggregates of grasping being
pain.
The second truth is the noble truth of the cause of the pain and this is
the craving Tanha (thirst) that leads to rebirth: the craving of the
passions, the craving for existence, the craving for nonexistence.
The third truth is the noble truth of the cessation of pain, consisting in
the remainder less cessation of craving, its abandonment and rejection,
emancipation and freedom from support.
The three noble truths mentioned above are the noble truths of knowledge that
constitute the state of the Arhat (the perfected disciple), who has reached the goal
of
Cessation
of
pain.
25
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
The fourth truth consists in the actual means of arriving at these truths,
which is the "Noble eightfold Path": Right views; Right intention; Right
effort; Right speech; Right action; Right livelihood; Right mindfulness;
and Right concentration.
The description of the Noble Path covers the whole training of the disciple as
developed in the Suttas, with great significance attached to a theoretical part
consisting of right views, a system of ethical practice and a method of mental
training demonstrated in the right effort, mindfulness and concentration.
As per the sermon, the individual has been analyzed in to five groups of
elements & or five aggregates of grasping, namely, the body, the feeling, the
perception, the mental element, and the consciousness. As opposed to Hinduism
and Jainism, Buddhism denies permanent self (Atman) while also denying that
there is anything beyond the five elements constituting the conception of the
individual. However, Buddah could not reconcile with the reality of life which has
both mind and body as conceived physically by all other religions, including his
own parent Hinduism. Hinduism, in particular, defends the Atman Rupa"(the soulbody) theory of definite existence of the soul and body as separate entities, as other
wise the existence of the body cannot be explained Further it went against the very
Hindu doctrine of karma and transmigration of soul to which even gods were held
liable," according to Bhagvat Geetha . Nevertheless, the Buddhist philosophy
accepts the theory of transmigration of souls from one body to another, until the
elements cease to exist altogether, by the process of disintegration with cessation
of craving and the goal of attaining Nirvana. This, to some extent, compares with
the Hindu philosophy of transmigration from one to another until the soul is
completely freed by Nirvana through karma and yoga.
Four questions Buddha refused to answer, for the reason that these were
unproductive and these were:
-
26
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
27
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
28
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
29
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
mainly of the Dravidian race, driven off to the south first and then to Lanka (Sri
Lanka) by the former, could be one of the reasons behind the omission.
Nevertheless, the Chronicles mention that it was Mahinda, the son of Asoka, who
spread the Buddha doctrine to Ceylon during the third century B.C.E.
Subsequent history of the Theravidins (or Dravidians?) is confined to Ceylon.
Accounts of the Chinese pilgrim travellers Fa Hien (fourth century C.E.) and Hiun
Tsiang (seventh century C.E.) show that they saw Buddhism extended even to
Central Asia and that eighteen different schools of the cult then existed in India of
which the Great Vehicle and the Little Vehicle were the two great divisions; the
Great Vehicle (Mahayana), begun during the first century C.E. had branded the
older school as the Little Vehicle (Hinayana). The Indian Buddhist king Kanishka
(first century C.E.} unhappy with so many divisions among the Buddhists, called a
general Buddhist council and arranged the three Pithakas and a commentary to be
issued as a standard. It was the Theravda school that spread Buddhism to the south
and to Ceylon under king Ashoka (274-232 B.C.E.). Another school, the
Sarvastivada, translated the Buddhist scripture into Sanskrit language and spread
the movement to northwest India, Tibet and China.The fact that Pali Canon is
taken as authoritative in Ceylon., Burma, Thailand, Laos and Cambodia shows that
Buddhism spread to those countries of southeast Asia from Ceylon, in the eastern
areas of the Indian subcontinent the Pali Theravidian school is the religion of the
minority community even today.
30
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Cracks had appeared in the Sangha (society) of the Buddhists in India as early
as the first century after the death of Buddha when at least three distinct schools
had merged among them. While the conservative called themselves the School of
Elders, or Theravidins in Pali language (Did the term come from the Dravidians,
the original inhabitants of India, who were mostly considered as the Hindu low
castes and who were chased down by the invading Aryans to the south?), the
liberals, known as the Great Assembly (Mahasanghika) interpreted the doctrines
more freely. Yet another movement, called Mahayana (The Great Vehicle), termed
the older school, Hinayana (The Little Vehicle), inferior and elementary. It was,
however, the old school of elders; or the Pali Theravidia school of Hinayana, and
the liberal Sanskrit school of Mahayana that survived. These, again, look as if they
were based on a racial rivalry between the north Indian Sanskrit speaking Aryan
invaders and the Pali-speaking Dravidians who were considered the lower Hindu
classes and driven southwards during the Aryan conquest of the Indo-Gangetic
plains. The difference between the Old School and the Liberal School may be
found from tbe Pali literature of the Theravidins and the Sanskrit literature of the
Mahayanas. While the Thervidins have great reverence for the person of the
historical Gautama Buddha, his teachings and the Buddhist Order which he
founded, the .Mahayanaa remember him as one of the many Buddha
manifestations of the primordial Buddha nature who are supposed to have taught
differently according to the needs of the various ages, they appeared, meaning that
there were many Buddhas before. This is certainly a doctrine adopted after
Buddha, to accept him as one of the Avatars (incarnations) of the Hindu god
Vishnu. In reciprocity to the Hindu doctrine developed later that Buddha was the
ninth Avatar of Vishnu, like Krishna. Again, while the Theravidins hold the view
that an ideal Buddhist is a true follower of the eightfold path enunciated by
Buddha, the Mahayanas believe that the ideal Buddhist is one who has vowed to
become Buddha-inspired to work for the good of others through the six virtues of
generosity, morality, patience, vigour, concentration and wisdom. The Mahayan
movement has incorporated in its literature many tendencies that grew out of the
traditions of North India during the first century B.C.E. and fifth century C.E. as is
evidenced from the Sanskrit, Chinese and Tibetan literature. Although these
remain classified under Vinaya (monastic rules), Sutras (discourses) and Shastras
(philosophical treatises), the subject matter often differs from what is found in Pali
works. The discourses project Buddha as a great teacher and in typical Mahayan
Sutras, he is depicted as a transcendent, eternal being preaching to innumerable
Buddhas,
31
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Bodhisattvas, gods and demigods, along with human disciples, in Shastras the
arguments revolve around concepts of ultimate reality such as inexpressible
voidness, metaphysically idealistic consciousness and truly so quality. The
Mahayan narratives also develop many miracles, legends and other elements in the
personal life of Buddha.
From the seventh century C.E. onwards the assimilation of a secret doctrine
called Tantrism became associated with Buddha's following. Tantrism appeared
first among the Hindus of India as a marginal ritual using Matras (spells),
Dhavanis (mystic syllables}, Mandalas (occult diagrams) and Mudras (symbolic
gestures) for reinforcing the devotion of the Hindu devotee through a state of a
symbolic mystical union with the deity of any specific god, with emphasis on his
consort as part of the Shakti cult. In the place of Hindu gods and their consorts, the
Buddhists substituted Buddha and Bodhisattvas with their mythical feminine
partners. Meditation on the symbol was intended to lead to an inner unification
with the deity which was considered the supreme spiritual bliss. The symbolism of
sexual union was used to indicate the ultimate mystical realization. This brought
not only condemnation from religious groups upon Buddhism, but also the
ultimate down fall of the Buddhist cult into the parent Hinduism itself through the
mutual acceptance of the concept of Buddha as the ninth incarnation of the Hindu
god Vishnu. Elsewhere it mostly became assimilated with other regional cults to
evolve common national cultures and ways of life.
32
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Chapter 3
Christianity
One of the prime religions of today with followers exceeding a billion and a
quarter living in almost all countries of the world, Christianity came into being as a
distinct religion long after the departure of Jesus Christ (peace be on him), a
prophet of God, from this world. The Christians believe that Jesus Christ (peace be
on him) was the eternal son of God by reason of his miraculous birth to the Virgin
Mary; that he was equal with God, who was his father; that God, while being one
in Essence is three in the personal concept of the Trinity, in the relationship of
Father, Son and Holy Spirit; and that Jesus (peace be on him) was sent to the earth
as His representative son to live, suffer as a human, and die on Cross at the hands
of his opponents for the redemption of his followers. According to the existing
records, Jesus (peace be on him) was born in Bethlehem of Palestine during the
reign of Herod the Roman, and preached Gospels among Jews more than 2,000
years ago. Think not that I have come to abolish the law and the prophets; I have
come not to abolish them but to fulfill them," he said emphasizing that with him
the chain of prophets and the law were not abolished, but only became fulfilled.
Jesus Christ (peace be on him) preached his Gospels for about three years only
before he was recalled by the Creator at the early age of thirty-three.
The Life of Jesus (Peace Be on Him)
The main information on the life of Jesus (peace be on him) is contained in
the records of the four early evangelists Matthew, Mark, Luke and John, known
and accepted by the Christian Church as the Gospels, found in the early part of the
New Testament of the Christian Bible. Some short glimpses into the early life of
Jesus (peace be on him) are found in only two of them, namely the Gospels
according to Matthew and Luke. There is, however, a fifth version of the Gospel
By Barnabas., according to which he himself was one of the twelve disciples of
Jesus (peace be on him) during his lifetime. But this is not accepted as canonical
by the Christian Churches. This version contains more information on the early
days of Jesus (peace be on him) than the rest.
33
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
34
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
testimony to the greatness of Jesus (peace be on him) as a prophet of God and the
will of God. It is also accepted that even after the birth of Jesus (peace be on him)
miracles were associated with him throughout his short lifespan of about thirtythree years of which only a tenth had been spent in the ministry. The miracles,
however, kept pace with his teaching and preaching mission as a means of
convincing the Jews of his super-ordinary powers as a prophet of God. These were
the miracles of talking while being still a babe in the cradle; healing; raising the
dead to life; providing food at short notice to large numbers of people; and so on,
all with divine help, of course.
Teachings of Jesus (Peace Be on Him)
That Jesus Christ (peace be on him) did not bring a new religion, but only
came to collect the lost sheep among the followers of Moses (peace be on him)
who had gone away from the law and the covenant, not abolishing but only
amplifying some of the God's laws established by Moses, and other prophets
before him (peace be on them) is borne out by the main preaching of the prophet
himself: "Think not that I have come to abolish the law and the prophets; I have
come not to abolish them, but to fulfill them.'' Further, the very fact that the Old
Testament, which is the first part of the Christian Bible is adopted from the Jewish
Pentateuch, supposed to be the collection of Mosaic Law and Covenant known as
Torah, shows that basically no new laws radically different from the spiritual,
moral and social laws which had been given to the Jewish nation called the
children of Israel were prescribed by Jesus (peace be on him). From the Gospels it
is also seen that apart from suggesting ways of avoidance of the very causes
prompting the commission of forbidden crimes and sins for which punishments
were prescribed in the Torah, Jesus Christ (peace be on him) did not introduce any
changes in the already existing Mosaic Law governing the social life and spiritual
concept of his followers. Essentially, therefore, Jesus Christ (peace be on him)
remained a final prophet or the promised Messiah of the Jewish people in the chain
of prophets from Moses (peace be on him) downwards. Nowhere in the Gospels
does Jesus Christ (peace be on him) claim that he was a prophet for the whole
world. Instead, as found in John 15:25-26; 15:26-27 and 16:7-11, and more
specifically in the Gospel of Barnabas, Jesus (peace be on him) had prophesied the
arrival of a "Counselor who will convince the world of sin and of righteousness
and of judgment ... When the spirit of truth comes, he will guide you into all the
truth; for he will not speak on his authority but whatever he hears he will speak
and
he
35
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
will declare to you the things that are to come. He will glorify me, for he will take
what is mine and declare it to you. This clearly shows that Jesus (peace be on
him) did mean that another prophet to convince the world would follow him and
that "if he (Jesus) (peace be on him) did not go away, the Counselor will not come
and that therefore it was advantageous to them that he himself went away." Neither
do the Gospels accepted by the churches nor the Gospel of Barnabas specify any
religious code on social life, worship and so on along the lines of the Jewish code.
The Gospels also do not state that Jesus Christ (peace be on him) ever ordained
any kind of religious prayers other than the way to pray as stated in Matt. 7:6-13.
Further, Matt. 19:16-20 states that Jesus (peace be on him) is reported to have not
only said, "if you would enter life, keep the commandments," but also that he
clarified "the commandments" to be: "You shall not kill, you shall not commit
adultery, you shall not steal, you shall not bear false witness, honor your father and
mother, and, you shall love your neighbor as yourself." As every student of the Old
Testament knows, these commandments are the essentials of social conduct in the
Law of Moses (peace be on him). Again, Matt. 22:37-40 says the Jesus (peace be
on him) is reported to have said, "On these two commandments depend all the law
and the prophets, These, as well as the report of Matt. 5:17-18, where Jesus
(peace-be on him) is stated to have said during the famous Sermon on the Mount;
Think not that I have come to abolish them but to fulfill them," as well as what is
designated as "The New Law'' Matt. 5:21-48, all show without any doubt that
rather than bringing any "New Law after abolishing the laws of the Torah given
by God to the children of Israel through Moses, Jesus (peace be on them) only
amplified and explained some of the earlier laws to make them unambiguously
clear. Further, the admonition reported to have been given by Jesus (peace be on
him) to the Pharisees and scribes in Matt. 23:1-36 shows that the intelligentsia of
the Jews had deviated from the letter and spirit of the teachings of Moses and the
prophets (peace be on them). Thus it is clear from the New Testament itself that
the main mission of Jesus (peace be on him) as an apostle of God was to guide the
children of Israel back into the right path socially, morally and
spiritually, and that this mission was confined to the Jewish people only and not to
the whole world as it was projected subsequently after the conversion of Saul
(Paul) sometime around 33 C.E.
It is seen in Acts 11:21-26 that the first time the followers of Christ (peace be
on him) were called "Christians" was in Antioch. Similarly, the ranks of the
followers of Jesus (peace be on him) were thrown open to gentiles (non-Israelites)
and heathens, even exempting them from the circumcision on the basis of a
declaration
made
by
evangelist
and
36
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
37
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
ministry but also a few decades after his ascension. This was, probably, the reason
why Christ (peace be on him) did not ordain even a separate prayer on his disciples
other than the general "Lord's prayer" as found in Matt. 6:9-13.
The Status of the Gospels
Although the four versions of the Gospels in the New Testament of the Bible
are considered by the Church as the Canon, they do not enable one to deal with the
problems in the life of Jesus (peace be on him) in any chronological order, nor do
they give any specific idea as to what pertinent way of life, spiritual as well as
temporal and radically different from the Mosaic laws that governed the Jewish
way of life, was specified by Jesus Christ (peace be on him). During the lifetime of
Jesus (peace be on him) no separate church or even place of worship was ever
established or ordered by him to be established for the exclusive use of his
disciples and followers. Jesus (peace be on him) himself worshipped in secret
away from the disciples and preached in Jerusalem and elsewhere, mostly within
the precincts of the Jewish synagogues. Even about faith in Jesus (peace be on
him) as well as in God, the report of the four evangelists in their versions of the
Gospel often give ambiguity. For instance, while in Mark 14:62, John 10:37 and
Matt. 16:13-17, Jesus (peace be on him) is reported to have called himself "the son
of God in Luke 22:70-71, the retort of Jesus (peace be on him) to the judge "You
say that I am (the son of God)," shows that he himself did not claim so. Elsewhere,
the testimony of Jesus (peace be on him) that God in heaven is your Father"
(Matt. 5:16, 6:6, 7:11); "my Father (Matt. 7:21); and "Blessed are the
peacemakers for they shall be called sons of God (Matt. 5:9); all go to show
conclusively that even according to the Gospels, Jesus, the prophet of God, (peace
be on him) had only stated the universal concept of Deut.14:1 "You are the sons of
the Lord, your God," and as in old Greek philosophical teachings that God being
the creator of everything, is the father of Jesus (peace be on him) as He is the
father of anyone and everything else too in the
universe, in a broad philosophical sense, which points to the fact that God's care
and love for human beings - in particular is on the footing of the father to his
children-nay, even much more indeed as he is the sole creator and sustainer of the
universe as a whole. It is also to be noted that, in more occasions than one, the
Gospels claim that Jesus Christ (peace be on him) had referred to himself as the
son of Man."
Thus, what is shown by the Gospels is that they convey two contradictory
messages
simultaneously:
that
Jesus
Christ
the
prophet
38
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
(peace be on him) was the "son of God" on the one hand and that he was the "son
of Man" on the other. Is there any doubt that what has been attributed to Jesus
Christ (peace be on him) by the Gospels - "I am the Son of God" (John 10:37); I
and Father are One" (John 10:30); "Therefore I send you prophets and wise men
and scribes, some of whom you kill and crucify" (Matt. 23:34); "The Father is in
me and I in Father" (John 10:38); the unprotested agreement of Jesus (peace be on
"him) with Thomas when the latter addressed him "My Lord and my God" (John
20:29); the approving reply of Jesus, (peace be on him) "Blessed are you,
Barjona," when the latter, Simon Peter, replied to the former, "You are Christ, the
Son of the living God," (Matt. 16:16-17); and so on - all purport to show that Jesus
Christ, the prophet of God (peace be on him) had claimed for himself oneness with
the Almighty One God, quite contrary to the uncompromising concept of the "Only
One Jealous God," contravention of which, as per the Covenant and often repeated
in the Torah, the children of Israel have been warned to guard against always, as
contained in Deut. 5:9 of the Old Testament, which is part of the Christian Bible
too. Thus, what in fact was Jesus (peace be on him)-whether a man, or the son of
God, a prophet of God, or even God himself-cannot be inferred conclusively from
the four Gospels, causing utter confusion in the mind of readers.
Further, study in Mark 10:11-12; "Whoever divorces his wife and marries
another, commits adultery against her and if she divorces her husband and marries
another, she commits adultery," and Mark 7:18-19; ''Thus he declared all foods
clean" (including dead meat, blood, pork, et cetera, forbidden by Mosaic law as
being unclean). This is certainly not in conformity with what Jesus himself (peace
be on him) preached: ''Think not that I have come to abolish the Law and the
prophets. I have come not to abolish them but to fulfill them" (Matt. 5:31-32).
Even on the subject of divorce, there is difference in reporting between Matthew
and Mark, while in Matt. 6:31-32, Jesus (peace be on him) is reported to have said,
"But I say to you that every one who divorces his wife except on the ground of
unchastity, makes her an adulteress, whoever marries a divorced woman commits
adultery," the exception "except on the ground of unchastity'' is missing from Mark
10:11-12. Thus, with so much contradiction, it becomes difficult to agree to the
claim that the four versions of the Gospel found in the Bible are the true
revelations of God, as preached by Jesus (peace be on him), who was a prophet of
God indeed.
From the style of reporting of the four Gospels in general as well as from the
opening verses of the Gospel according to Luke and the Acts of the Apostles of the
New
Testament
it
seems
that
at
least
these
39
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
two and possibly the whole of the Gospels were written by one and the same
author who was with Paul and his followers, perhaps one Theophilus. This must
have happened not earlier than 62 C.E. and possibly much later, because Paul's
sailing to Rome along with the author to appeal to Caesar directly regarding Paul's
conviction to Jerusalem, as reported in it, was about that year and the various
letters which Paul, Peter, Jude and Janies had written to Jews and gentiles are
found in the last part of the New Testament could not have been written until years
after the event. Thus a conservative estimate of the time of writing of the New
Testament could be after 70 C.E. or even much later. From the letter of Saint Paul
to the Romans it is also found that it was written by one Tartius, who with Paul,
and the whole church had been then the guests of one Gaius. There is no clue in
the New Testament to estimate when these were written, except that the so called
Muratorian fragment, published by Ludovico Muratori in Latin, shows the names
of the books that were read in the Church of Rome of about 200 C.E. It is said that
Mark, who compiled the Gospel, was a disciple or Saint Peter, and Luke a disciple
of Saint Paul. There is a misunderstanding that the other compilers, Matthew and
John, were of the twelve disciples of Jesus (peace be on him). It carries no
authenticity because Matthew's version of Gospel has referred to the real disciple
Matthew of Jesus (peace be on him) and the version of John refers only to a
disciple: Simon, son of John. Separately, Mark is reported to have written his
version Of the Gospels in Latin about 65-70 C.E., Luke, his version in about 80-90
C.E., Matthew about 80-100 C.E. and John his version about l00-140 C.E.
It is known that many more versions of the Gospels did exist earlier,
especially from what is said in the opening paragraph of the Gospel according to
Luke addressed to Theophilus by the writer. That there was more than one version
of the Gospel and other philosophies on faith, contradictory to each other, and
existing even during the early days of the evangelists, is proven by Paul's own
letters to the Corinthian & (Cor. I 1:10-17; 4:15-17; and 7:17-18) as well as his
letter to the Galatians (1:6-13), in which are found strong and emphatic phrases
such as, "Be imitators of me," "To remind you of my ways in Christ," "This is my
rule in all the churches," " I am astonished that you are so quickly deserting him
who called you in grace of Christ and turning to a different gospel ... the gospel
which was preached by me," and so on. This is quite expected from the fact that
Paul's elevation to the rank of a follower and then to that of an apostle was on the
basis of a trance vision of Christ (peace be on him), after which he announced
Christ in Damascus, as "He is the son of God." However, among his colleagues
there were others who had not only moved with Jesus (peace
40
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
be on him) as one of his twelve disciples but were also made apostles by him
personally for spreading his gospels which must have been different from the one
received by Paul through the trance vision, which could not always be quite correct
in relation to real happenings. In 200 C.E. thirty-four Bibles and one hundred
thirteen epistles, all in Greek, were known to have been included in religious books
of the time. However, as stated further on in this chapter, in the year 325 C.E., the
Nicaean Council declared that all but the four versions of the gospels and those
epistles now found in the New Testament were forgeries; the rest were ordered to
be destroyed, including the Gospel of Barnabas.
No one may be at all sure whether the version of Gospel attributed to
Barnabas is the true Gospel of Jesus (peace be on him) for the same reason as
detailed above. However, to a person of unbiased mind, there are some salient
points in it that may give it a higher status. It is a more logical and a continuous
document touching on the circumstances that led to the conception of Jesus by the
Virgin Mary, the birth of Jesus (peace be on him), his early days, his prophetic
ministry, and his elevation in person to God. In unequivocal terms, while this
document, which according to its author was the result of having been instructed
by Jesus (peace be on him) in his capacity as one of the masters own twelve
disciples, denies the divinity of Jesus (peace be on him) as well as his crucifixion,
and also confirms that he was a miracle child conceived and born under the will of
God (as in the case of Adam (peace be on him) who, of course, had no father or
mother) that he was a prophet who was charged with guiding the erring children of
Israel into the arena of Mosaic Law, modified in "fulfillment" in accordance with
time but within the jurisdiction of the Law and prophets. In fact, when one reads
this version of the Gospel, it gives the impression that Jesus Christ (peace be on
him) is there preaching to the Jews that he had arrived to rekindle the faith in One
God and adherence to the Commandments of God in letter and spirit which they
had ignored many a time in their past long history, and therefore that they should
become true believers through repentance because the Kingdom of God was at
hand. But unfortunate as it is, this version of Gospel is rejected by the churches.
Notwithstanding, it is quite strange that nowhere in the Gospels recognized by
the Church is there any mention that the information contained therein is based on
the consensus of the ten or eleven good disciples of Jesus (peace be on him) and
certainly not the two earliest of them. Simon, called Peter, and Andrew. It is
particularly so because the prophetic ministry of Jesus (peace be on him) was
confined to a very short period of three years only. Again, considering that at least
41
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
ten out of his twelve disciples were true and as reported in Matt. 6:20, Mark 8:2730 and Luke 9:21 of the Gospels, then Jesus (peace be on him) himself had
commanded his disciples "to tell no one about him (being the Christ)," it appears
quite mysterious how any of his true disciples ever dared to disclose this secret
information to anyone else against the firm directive of the master not to do so. It
is also not understood how so any contradictory reports even on matters of faith
and belief in God and Christ (peace be on him) could have crept into the four or
five available accounts on Jesus (peace be on him) and his teachings within such a
short period. It is also quite mysterious how the Gospel of Jesus, the prophet of
God (peace be on him), which was the revelation from none other than God, did
not get preserved at least in the memories of quite a few of his disciples who had
been around him when the Gospel must have been revealed during his short
prophetic period of three years to be transcribed at least soon after his ascension
period verbatim in the first person. Instead the scribes among his followers
prepared them nearly a century later as stories differing in accounts from person to
person even on matters of faith. Thus, the authenticity of the Gospel reports
available today appear to be logically and critically doubtful indeed.
Comparison Between the Old Laws of the Torah and the New
Laws of the Gospels
The belief that Jesus Christ (peace be on him) had brought "New Laws in
place of the Old Laws of the Torah, as interpreted in the Gospels (Matt. 5:21-48;
Mark 7:19-23; 10:11-12; and so on), appears to have been based on a serious
misunderstanding. At best, the teachings of Jesus (peace be on him) may be
considered as amplifications of some of the Old Laws but certainly not as any
amendments. The Gospels go far deeper into the removal of the causes of
committing sins for which the Torah had laid down punishments. They are finer
amplifications of the Ten Commandments, relating how to avoid committing sins
in thought, words action or allowing even a cause to remain. The Gospels impress
the need to love God and neighbor, to respect the parents; to do good deeds not for
showing up to the world, but for God's sake; not to worship, fast and perform
charities so that others should see them; not only to abstain from adultery, but not
even to see or think of such an action and if necessary to remove the part of the
body that may tempt one to commit such a sin; not to hoard wealth when one's
brethren need it; to refrain from hypocrisy and finding fault with others rather than
trying oneself to be faultless and so on. In fact, these are some of the Mosaic Laws
concerning
the
shaping
of
moral
42
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
and spiritual values. Thus, the correct view is that the Gospels of Christ (peace be
on him) have clarified the modus operandus of the common laws of the Old
Testament. Instead, it was unfortunate that soon after the departure of Christ
(peace be on him), his followers including the children of Israel as well as the
gentiles fell into deeper blasphemy, having gotten mixed up with the heathen,
Roman, Greek and other faiths as well as philosophies. Leaving the strict
monotheism -the "Only One God" enjoined on the children of Israel- they opted
for the cult of the Trinity, whereby Jesus (peace be on him) is not only called the
son of God but is treated as one with God, thus abolishing the Law and defying his
most important Gospels: "Think not that I have come to abolish the law and
prophets; I have not come to abolish them but to fulfill them" (Matt, 5:17); "It is
easier for heaven and earth to pass, than one little of the law to fail" (Luke 16:17);
"For it is written that thou shalt worship the Lord thy God and him only shall you
serve" (Matt. 4:10); and "Why callest thou me good? There is no good, save one,
that is God" (Luke 18:19).
It is thus seen that the real mission of Christ (peace be on him) was to rekindle
in the children of Israel the love of God as well as neighbors and strict adherence
to the real commandments given by God to them through Moses (peace be on him)
in letter and spirit, or in short, "to collect the lost sheep back into the herd as a
shepherd " in the capacity of yet another prophet and Messiah of Israelites in the
chain of many earlier ones.
43
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
sovereign, who was not then a Christian, however. This was called the Council of
Nicaea. Again, in his book Age of Reason, Thomas Fain says on page 92 that the
Councils of Nicaea and Laodicen were held about 350 C.E. and that the books that
compose the New Testament were then voted for with "Yeas'' and "Nays," and a
great many books which were offered were rejected on the basis of a majority of
"Nays.'' It is said that out of some fifty Gospels only those of Matthew, Mark, Luke
and John were selected and the rest were burned. The Emperor Constantine then
decreed that the above decision be considered as sanctioned by the Divine Will,
that the four Gospels should be believed implicitly as the words of God and that
anyone found either possessing or concealing what was contained in any copy of
the Gospels other than the authorized four versions shall be punished by death for
preaching something other than the words of God. Thus, bowing down to the
imperial authority, the bishops vowed to produce the first copy of the New
Testament. Further, all Hebrew copies of the Gospels were also ordered to be
destroyed. H. G. Wood says, "The material in the synoptic Gospels is not affected,
for the most part, by the events of 79 C.E. It has taken shape in the experience ofthe first generation of Christians before the fall of Jerusalem. The order in which
the stories about Jesus are narrated in the Gospels is obviously in large measure
artificial and it varies from one Gospel to another" (H. G. Wood, 14 7, Did Christ
Really Live). However, there is no doubt that Jesus Christ (peace be on him) was a
fact and not a fiction.
It is probable that because the early Christians believed and expected the end.
Of the world very soon, as seen from I Cor. 7:26 31, the Gospels appear as
unmethodical casual literature to serve for a very short stopgap period only and
particularly so because of the prophecy: For the time is at hand. It is pertinent to
point out here that Clement of Rome (97 C.E.) and Polycorp (112 C.E.) quote
sayings of Jesus (peace be on him) in a form different from those found in the
existing Canonical Gospels. In his seventh epistle, Polycorp inveighs much against
"men who pervert the saying of the Lord to their own lusts," which looks to be
referring to tradition earlier than the Gospels.
Gospel of Barnabas
Reference has already been made earlier to the Gospel of Barnabas. It is of interest
to know what it is and where it is. It is said that this version of Gospel was in
acceptance as canonical in the churches of Alexandria prior to the decision of the
Nicaean
Council
of
325
C.E.
It
44
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
is also stated that Iranaeus (130-200 C.E.) was a supporter of pure monotheism and
opposed to Paul for injecting documents of pagan Roman religion as well as
Platonic philosophy and had quoted extensively from the Gospel of Barnabas in
support of his views. This shows that the Gospel of Barnabas was in circulation
during the first and second centuries C.E. However, as was said earlier, the
Nicaean Council having decided to destroy all Gospels and original Hebrew scripts
other than the four authorized ones, an edict was issued that anyone in possession
of any other version of the Gospels should be put to death. Notwithstanding, a
copy of the Gospel of Barnabas was secured in 383 C.E. by the Pope who
preserved it in his private library. During the year 478 C.E., during the reign of
Emperor Zeno, the remains of Saint Barnabas were discovered and a copy of the
Gospel in own hand was found on his breast, as recorded in Acia Sanctorum
Boland Junii Tbm II (Antwerp, 1698). The famous Vulgate Bible appeared to have
been based on this Gospel. Subsequently, Fra Marino, a friend of Pope Sixtus
(1585-1590) found the copy of the Gospel of Barnabas in the private library of the
pope. Marino naturally got interested in it as he had read the writings of Iranaeus
in which Barnabas had been profusely quoted. This Italian manuscript passed
through different hands until it reached "a person of great name and authority" in
Amsterdam who, in his lifetime, had been often heard putting a high price to this
piece of historical importance. After the death of this "person of great name and
authority," who wanted to remain anonymous for obvious reasons as far as this
Gospel was concerned, it came into the possession of J.E. Cramer, a councilor of
the King of Prussia, in the year 1713. Cramer presented this manuscript to the
famous connoisseur of books, Prince Eugene of Savoy. In 1738, along with the
library of the prince it found its way into the Hofbibliothek in Vienna, where it
now rests. This Latin text was translated into English by Mr. and Mrs. Rogg,
printed at the Clarendon Press in Oxford and published by the Oxford University
Press in the year 1907. However, this English translation mysteriously disappeared
from the market. Two solitary copies of this translation, however, are known to
exist, one in the British Museum and the other in the Library of Congress,
Washington.
In his Miscellaneous Works (published posthumously in 1747) Toland
mentions that the Gospel of. Barnabas was still extant, (pp. 380, Vol. I) In chapter
fifteen he refers to the Glasian Decree of 496 C.E where "Evangelium Barnabe" is
included in the list of forbidden books. Prior to that it had been also forbidden in
465 C.E. by Pope Innocent as well as by the Decree of Western Churches issued in
382 C.E. Barnabas is also mentioned in the stichomythia of Nicephorus, serial no.
45
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
3, Epistles of Barnabas, lines 1,300 as well as in the list of Sixty Books: serial no.
17, Travels and Teachings of Apostles; serial no. 18, Epistles of Barnabas, serial
no. 24, Gospel according to Barnabas.
A brief explanation of Barnabas may not be out of place here. Barnabas was
first mentioned in the New Testament in Acts 4:32-37, where he is stated to have
been one of the early followers of Jesus Christ (peace be on him). A Levite Jew
from Cyprus and surnamed as such, meaning son of encouragement, he sold all
his fields and brought the enture money to the feet of the apostles in the way of
God. Saul, a Jew from Tarsus with Roman citizenship and a prosecuter of the
followers of Jesus, became converted to Christianity (taking the name of Paul and
later St. Paul) as a result of a trance vision of Christ near Damascus and wanted to
join the ranks of the other disciples. The apostles were afraid of him for they did
not believe him to be one of them; it was Barnabas who took Saul and brought him
to the disciples, who sent him to Tarsus, his birthplace, for fear of enemies (Acts
9:26-30). Again, it was Barnabas who was sent as a delegate of the church in
Jerusalem to Antioch for preaching and who on his arrival there went to Tarsus to
look for Saul and when he found him was brought to Antioch (Acts 11:19-26).
Further, the followers in Antioch decided to send the relief collected by them for
the famine-stricken brethren of Judea to the elders in Jerusalem by the hands of the
same Barnabas and Saul (Acts 11:30). On fulfillment of their mission, Barnabas
and Saul returned from Jerusalem, bringing with them John, whose other name
was Mark (Acts 12:25). Further on, it is stated that while the prophets and teachers
Barnabas, Symeon, who was called Niger, Lucious of Cyrene, Manaem, a
member of the court of Herod the tetrarch and Saulwere worshipping the Lord
and fasting in the church at Antioch, the Holy Spirit said, Set apart for me
Barnabas and Saul for the work to which I have called them, and it was after
praying and fasting that they laid their hands on them and sent them off on their
missionary journey to Seleucia and then onwards to Cyprus (Acts 13:1-4). Again,
in Lystra when the people called Barnabas the god Jupiter and Paul Hermes and
wanted to offer sacrifice of oxen to them, Barnabas and Paul tore their garments
and rushed among the multitude, crying, Men, you should turn from these things
to the living God, who made the heaven and the earth and the sea and all in
themand restrained the people from offering sacrifices to them (Acts 14:11-18).
Later on, Paul refers to Barnabas (concerning whom you have received
instructions: if he comes to you, receive him) (Col. 4:10), and James, Cephas
and John, who seemed to be pillars, perceived the grace that was given me, they
gave me and Barnabas the right hands of fellowship, that we should go to the
heathen
and
they
unto
the
46
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
circumcised (Gal. 2:9). Thus, it is seen that like Saul (Paul), Barnabas too had
eminent standing as an apostle among the early followers of Jesus (peace be on
him). However, in his version of the Gospel, Barnabas had stated that he was one
of the twelve disciples of Jesus (peace be on him) and was required by the master
himself to write the Gospels as well as about his life. In fact, from the Gospels
according to Matthew and Mark, it is found that, except for the names of two
disciples of Jesus (peace be on him), Thomas and Simon the Cananite, the
remaining ten are the same as found in the Gospel of Barnabas. However, in the
Gospel of Barnabas the names of these two disciples have been substituted with
one Judas (different from the traitor Judas Iscariot) and Barnabas himself.
Nevertheless, it is of much interest to know also that in the Gospel according to
Luke, the name of the same Judas as found in the Gospel of Barnabas is shown in
place of Simon the Cananite mentioned in the Gospels of Matthew and Mark,
although the name Barnabas has been replaced by the name Thomas as in the latter
Gospels. Therefore, why the Nicean Council excluded the Gospel of Barnabas,
who had almost the same standing among the followers of Jesus (peace be on him),
from the authorized versions is surprising indeed.
On a careful reading of the Gospel of Barnabas, it is seen that it covers almost
the entire life story of Jesus (peace be on him), from his miraculous conception and
birth, to the time of his ascension. While it has many things in common with what
has been stated in the GospelsMatthews in particular, including the flight of
Joseph with Mary and the babe Jesus from Bethlehem to Egyptone very
remarkable difference between it and the rest of the Gospels accepted by the
Church is that it categorically states that Jesus (peace be on him) was only a
prophet of God who reprimanded his followers as well as Hebrews and gentiles
when they called him son of God or attributed to him any of the powers of God. In
fact, this Gospel does not corroborate the reports of the other Gospel writers that
he called himself son of God or owned to himself any share in the divinity of God.
Further, it makes quite clear that Jesus (peace be on him) proclaimed himself as a
prophet of God to the children of Israel sent with the mission to guide them back to
the law, as done by many a prophet before him, through a process of repentance.
This document also corroborates the prophecy of Jesus (peace be on him) found in
John 14:25-26, 15:7-15 and 15:26-27, regarding the arrival of yet another prophet
of God who will be the Spirit of Truth and Comforter and Counsellor who
will not only glorify Christ (peace be on him), but will convince the whole world
of sin and teach them all things, not speaking from his authority but whatever he
hears (from God) as well as declare to them the things
47
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
that are to come. More on this topic will be discussed under the chapter of
Comparative Study, to follow. It must be pointed out here with regret, however,
what the followers of this great prophet of God, Jesus Christ (peace be on him)
have made, unfortunately, of his fine teachings. After his ascension they attributed
to him divinity, sonship of God and unilateral assumption of the powers of the
Almighty God, though the doctrine of Trinity in utter disregard of the solemn
covenant that God had taken from the children of Israel through their prophet
Moses (peace be on him): If a prophet arises among you or a dreamer dreams and
gives you a sign of wonder,and if he says, Let us go after other godsand let us
serve tehm, you shall not listen to the words of that prophetfor the Lord your
God is testing you to know whether you love the Lord your God with all your soul.
You shall walk after the Lord your God and fear Him, and keep His
commandments and obey His voice and you shall serve Him and cleave to Him.
But the prophet or that dreamer of dreams shall be put to death because he has
taught rebellion against the Lord your God (Deut. 13:1-5). Leaving the concept
of the only One God whose absolute power is shared by none, it is a pity today that
physical worship of the cross, Jesus (peace be on him), the Virgin Mary and even
the saints after assigning divinity to them in the name of the Holy Spirit have been
adopted by the followers of the great prophet of God, Jesus Christ, peace be on
him.
The Old Testament
That Jesus Christ (peace be on him) was anpther prophet sent by god to
retrieve the misguided children of Israel and that the laws of the Torah of the jews
were applicable to the followers of Jesus Christ (peace be on him) as well are
testified by the fact that the first part of the Christian Scripture, the Old Testament
of the Bible, is nothing but what the jews call the Five books of Moses
(Pentateuch), as well as other books, like the Psalms of David, associated with a
number of prophets of the children of Israel between Moses and Jesus (peace be on
them).
The oldest translation of the Old Testament is the Septuagint, a greek
translation of the Hebrew text made in the third century B.C.E. Since the invention
of the printing press during the fifteenth century C.E., by and by the Bible as a
whoel had been translated into most of the languages of the world, of which over
250 or so have been complete versions. The Roman Catholic Church, however,
considers
the
Vulgate
48
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
version of St. Jerome as authentic and official. Although the first complete English
version of the Bible was made by john Wycliffe in the late fourteenth century C.E,
the later English versions were based on Tyndales Bible of the sixteenth century.
The King James version of the English translation of 1611, standardized all
available versions and is known as The Authorized Version, prepared by a
committee of a dozen scholars. Since then the Bible has been revised by scholastic
boards a few times, the latest American version having being published as late as
1970.
It is, however, shocking that in spite of the continuous research and revisions
that have gone into the themes and material of the Bible many times during the
past centuries by Jewish as well as Christian churches, no one has yet been able to
discover in it such glaring discrepancies and contradictions, nor the unholy
atrocities that have been committed by the compilers of the two scriptures of
Jewish and Christian faiths, namely the Old as well as the New Testaments,
considered as the words of God which are unchangeable for the generations they
had been intended for. The analysis given in the foregoing paragraphs proves that
neither the Old Nestament nor the New Testament remain the unpolluted words of
God as revealed to His great prophets, Moses and Jesus Christ respectively (peace
be on them), to be the laws and guides to the children of Israel for directing their
affairs the way god wanted them to be directed. There are good reasons, however,
not to deny recognition to everything contained therein as the Word of God.
Nevertheless, the great effort made in the past by the compilers to base the Bible in
general on whatever documents that had been passed on to them as authentic by
earlier generations without questioning them (until our times, as found in the
Revised Standard Version, edited by John Stirling and issued on behalf of the
British and Foreign Bible Society in the year 1952, which is my main reference) is
certainly commendable.
49
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
long after his ascension. Further, the upbringing of the baby Jesus, his
circumcision and baptism were all in accordance with the Hebrew laws and
tradition. If, on the other hand circumcision was not considered as cardinal act of
faith for followers then God would surely have revealed this fact to his mother, the
Virgin Mary, not to circumcise him, for divine revelations of importance are
reported to have been made by God to her and Joseph prior to and after the birth of
Jesus. The Gospels also proclaim Jesus (peace be on him.) to have impressed on
his listeners (who were mainly Jews) the need for repenting) obviously because
they had lived in sin against "the laws of the Torah and the Covenant with God.
Further, the four versions of the Gospel as well as the Gospel of Barnabas bear out
the fact that the followers of Christ strictly followed the old Jewish laws and that
they even followed the Sabbath on Saturdays as the Jews did (Matt. 28:1, Mark
16:1-2, Luke 23:56, 24:1) and not on Sundays as it became the practice later on.
Again, another convincing proof of the fact that Jesus Chris (peace be on him) was
yet another prophet of God to the Children of Israel is the testimony found in the
Acts 1:6-7 of the New Testament. At the time of the resurrection of Christ (peace
be on him), when the disciples asked him, "Will you at this time restore the
KINGDOM OF ISRAEL his reply was, "It is not for you to know the times or
seasons which the Father has by His own authority," after which he is reported to
have been lifted forever. What other concrete evidence is needed to establish the
fact that Jesus Christ (peace be on him) was the last prophet of God sent to the
children of Israel to reestablish the real laws of the Torah through the Gospels
because the former had been polluted beyond recognition as the words of God.
For a number of years after the ascension of Jesus Christ, (peace be on him)
the Jews in collaboration with the heathens, and particularly the Romans,
continued to persecute his followers. His teachings focusing on the worship of the
Only One God and following the laws of Torah in letter and spirit were contrary to
their own then existing practices of faith and action, the Jews having acquired
many abominations of heathen sects due to fraternization and abetment as well as
the laxities of a priestly order that sold the law for petty gains, preached what they
did not practice and remained hypocrites as denounced by Jesus himself (peace be
upon him) in Matt. 23:1-39. Christ (peace be on him) was sent by God to clean up
this mess with the Gospels. Between the first and fifth centuries C.E., Christianity
became the state religion of Rome and thereafter it spread to the Mediterranean
areas, North Africa, the Middle East and the West Coast of India through early
evangelists. About three decades after Christ (peace be on him), one
50
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
51
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
and paganic ways of life had a great hold, and the intelligentsia under the influence
of Plato and Aristotle, could not be attracted to his theory without making mutual
adjustments. The theories of Redemption and the Trinity whereby Jesus (peace be
on him) is defied as the son of God - the equation of God, Son and the Holy Spirit,
were the children of Paul's brain, and were philosophies foreign to the real
message of Jesus (peace be on him) and unknown to his personal disciples:
Dynamic and extremist as he was, Paul, who had not known Jesus (peace be on
him) appeared on the scene in preference to Jesus' (peace be on him) own
disciples, who had been all along with the master during the short period of his
ministry. Rome became the center of Christian activity instead of Jerusalem, where
the main Jewish synagogue existed. Rather than being a renaissance movement
within Judaism, from then onwards Christianity became a distinctly separate
religion, with the followers of Christ peace be on him) being called "Christians.'' a
term never used by Jesus (peace be on him). Paul became, thereafter, more known
to the Christians than even Christ himself (peace be on him). As said earlier, being
an aggressive being an aggressive Roman citizen and a Jew from Tarsus, as well as
an earlier persecutor and killer of the followers of Christ (peace be on him), on
conversion Paul's extremism was channeled into a vigorous spreading of
Christianity with the Roman empire as the center. Perhaps opportunism forced him
to make adjustments with the polytheism of gentiles, Romans, Greeks, heathens in
general and the corrupt Jews, so that deification of Jesus (peace be on him) on the
concept of the Trinity became the canon of the Christian Church, founded for the
first time under the aegis of Paul.
It has already been said that the conviction of Paul that Jesus (peace be on
him) was the son of God was based upon his trance vision of Jesus (peace be on
him), which he interpreted to be a message conveyed to him by the Holy Spirit.
His deification of Jesus (peace be on him) gave an essential bridge for
reconciliation between his own thoughts and the Hellenic as well as heathen
customs of worship of demigods, which had been prevailing during the time in the
Greek, Roman, Egyptian and Indian religious practices. Further, the universal
brotherhood adopted as a cornerstone of Christianity by Paul and his followers
when they opened the Christian ranks to Hebrews and gentiles alike in contrast to
the law being confined to the rank and file of the twelve tribes of the children of
Israel alone gave the Christian movement good edge over Judaism and other
religions then existing. So also, the social discrimination based on birth into a
particular clan or caste as existed then in heathen and pagan societies of Africa and
Asia made the new movement a welcome guest among many a downtrodden
people in the communities where evangelists preached the Christian
52
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
message. To them the worship of the Trinity only, highlighted by Jesus (peace be
on him), the son, was a lesser evil than the worship as well as the sacrificial
offerings to several gods and goddesses for different purposes. Thus, the spread of
the Christian faith caught great momentum in subsequent years.
The Crucifixion
The Christian faith is to a very large extent, based on the event of crucifixion.
The New Testament is conclusive on the events of the crucifixion of Jesus (peace
be on him) as well as his resurrection before his final disappearance. The Christian
believes that it was by way of the fulfillment of the Scriptures and for the
redemption of all who believe in Christ (peace be on him) that he was crucified.
The atonement function, which is administered by the priest at the time of death of
a Christian, is considered as an initiation into the sharing of the death of Jesus
(peace be on him) by the devotee. In fact, the Christian belief is that Jesus (peace
be on him) died on the cross to save his devotees and to blot out the "original sin"
committed by Adam (peace be on him) and that sheer faith in Jesus as the son of
God (peace be on him) acting as and on behalf of God through the holy bond of the
Trinity alone would free them from all sins. However, on a close scrutiny of the
New Testament it is found that it relates the reappearance of Jesus Christ (peace be
on him) in flesh and blood in front of his disciples and followers soon after his
supposed death by crucifixion. He himself asked them to feel by touch to be sure
that he was really alive, proving conclusively that he was not crucified. It is
reported in The Acts of the Apostles that not only did Jesus (peace be on him)
appear alive to the disciples, but also appeared to teach them for a full forty days,
speaking of the Kingdom of God (Acts 1:3,4) and that they even conversed with
him. Peter as well as Paul have also testified of this fact in Acts 2:32 and 23, 24,
respectively, although Paul had not seen Jesus (peace be on him) in person either
before or after the incident on the cross.
The questions of crucifixion and the subsequent resurrection of Christ (peace
be on him) are the cornerstones of Christian faith and belief. Nevertheless, logic
and history have much, more to reveal than this blind faith. Firstly, to witness the
alleged crucifixion of Christ (peace be on him), none of his disciples is reported to
have been present. While Judas Iscariot turned a traitor, Peter denied even
knowing Christ (peace be on him) thrice "invoking curse on himself and swearing"
(Mark 14:66-71), and the rest all disappeared from the vicinity to save
53
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
themselves. As stated in Mark 15:40,41 and Matt. 28:66,66, only some women
including his mother, Mary, were, perhaps, witnessing the act and that too from a
far distant spot from where it would have been difficult to recognize without any
doubt who in fact was the person that was being crucified on the pole. In contrast
to the reports in the Gospels of Matthew and Mark on the incident, Luke's Gospel
states (Luke 23:49) that "all his acquaintances and the women who had followed
him (Jesus) from Galilee stood at a distance" and saw him dying. John's Gospel
(John 19:25,27) states that "Mary, his mother, his mother's sister, two other Marys
and a disciple whom he loved saw Jesus dying by their side, on the cross. It is
also stated that no male ever approached the spot being known only to him even to
collect the dead body until the evening, except one Joseph, a respected member of
the council (Mark 15:43), who arranged for the burial of Jesus (peace be on him)
in secret in a tomb in the rock, the spot being known only to him, Mary Magdalene
and Mary, the mother of Jesus (Mark 16:46, 47).
On the theme or the so-called resurrection of Jesus (peace be on him) from
the grave, two contradictory reports are found in the Gospels of Matthew, Luke,
Mark and John. While Matthew's report states that on the Sunday morning when
Mary Magdalene and Mary the mother of Jesus, went to the tomb where Jesus
(peace be on him) was supposed to have been buried a couple of days earlier, they
found it empty and that an angel in glory told them that Jesus (peace be on him)
had resurrected from the grave to reappear in Galilee; Jesus (peace be on him)
reappeared to them on their way back as instructed by him, they reported this
matter to the disciples of Jesus (peace be on him) (Matt; 28:1-10). Luke reports
that two men (and not one angel in glory) found at the grave told a number of
women who had gone to anoint the body on the first day of the week, that Jesus
(peace be on him) had risen from the grave and that it was they who in turn told
the eleven apostles and the rest who did not believe them (Luke 24:4-11). Mark's
version says that the day after the Sabbath, when the women and the Marys went
to the tomb to anoint Jesus (peace be on him), they saw a young man" sitting by
the grave who told them of the resurrection of Jesus (peace be on him) to appear in
Galilee and that although he had instructed them to inform Peter and the other
disciples, they said nothing to anyone for they were afraid (Mark 16:5-8).
However, John's version of the incident is entirely different. He says that when
Mary Magdalene had first gone to the tomb on the still dark morning of the day
after the Sabbath, she saw the stone had been taken away from the tomb and then
she informed Peter and "the other disciple whom Jesus loved," who ran out to the
tomb. They saw that the shroud had been rolled up and Jesus (peace be on him)
was
not
in
it
and
they
went
54
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
back to their homes as they did not know the scripture that "Jesus must rise from
the dead." However, Mary, the mother, while standing weeping outside the tomb,
saw two angels in white sitting where the body of Jesus (peace be on him) was
lain, one at the head and one at the feet. Saying that "she was weeping because
they had taken away her Lord ... on turning round she saw Jesus (peace be on him)
standing but did not know that it was Jesus." Jesus (peace be on him) said .to her,
"Woman, why are you weeping? Whom do you seek? Supposing him to be the
gardener, she said to him, "Sir, if you have carried him away, tell me where you
have laid him and I will take him away." Jesus (peace be on him) said to her,
"Mary." She turned and said to him in Hebrew, "Rabboni" (Teacher), and as
directed by him, she went and said to the disciples, ''I have seen the Lord." (John
20:1-18).
Further, what is reported in Matt. 27:46 and Mark 15:34,35, that Jesus Christ
(peace be on him) died on the cross under pathetic and miserable circumstances,
shouting in Hebrew, "My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me?" is so
touching that it is beyond the comprehension of man to believe: a chosen prophet
of God, whom Christians believe was not only His only son, but was acting as
and on behalf of his Father, God died on the cross miserably neglected by God at
the hands of his enemies, some of whom spat on him. It is even harder to believe
that a chosen prophet of God behaved in such an abject manner, remonstrating
against an act and losing all hope in the mercy of God rather than accepting the
situation with reliance and utmost patience as the will of the Almighty and Allknowing God. However, it is interesting to note that while Luke reported it in his
Gospel differently that Jesus (peace be on him) died on the cross crying in a loud
voice: "Father, into thy hands I commit my spirit" (Luke 23:45), a plea that may be
acceptable from a prophet of God - it is rather strange that John has not made any
mention of this important incident at all in his version of the Gospel.
Thus it is a complex riddle that cannot be solved even by a computer. One
angel found sitting at the tomb of Jesus (peace be on him) as per one report and
two angels according to another; son and angels not recognizing and respecting his
dear mother (from the strange expression, "woman," in John 20:15); the ardent
mother not recognizing her son, Jesus (peace be on him) and vice versa, only a
couple of days after she had seen him last; Mary and the other women "not telling''
of the incident to others according to one version and "telling'' of the incident to
others according to other versions; the two contradictory versions of the same
incident - a hopeless and dejected cry of Jesus (peace be on him) on the cross on
the one hand and a hopeful and contented cry on the other - are all so unconvincing
on
two
of
the
most
55
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
important aspects of Christian faith itself that while on the one hand they make
doubtful the very authenticity of the four versions of the Gospel accepted by the
Church as Scriptures and on the other they pose a number of questions on the very
faith developed on the crucifixion and resurrection of Jesus, (peace be on him)
hitherto believed to be canonical.
Was the incident of the denial of Jesus (peace be on him) thrice under oath, by
his trusted early disciple Peter because of the probability that the person caught for
prosecution and crucifixion was not in fact Jesus Christ, the prophet of God, (peace
be on him) but an imposter who, because of his hypocrisy and wickedness was
transformed by God to look almost like Jesus (peace be on him)? Did Judas have
to identify Jesus (peace be on him) to the Jews by kissing his hands because the
imposter, who perhaps having claimed the sonship of God, and oneness with God
to himself was to be put to death according to the Jewish laws was not known to
them (while Jesus should have been well-known to them because of his frequent
preaching in the synagogues for over three years)? Were the resurrection of
Jesus (peace be on him) a few days after his supposed crucifixion and his
subsequent ascension really acts of God to convince the disciples and followers
that he was not crucified but recalled to heaven as yet another miracle like his birth
itself. These and many other similar questions (such as why the disciples or even
Jesus Christ (peace be on him) did not touch on these important matters concerning
faith during his reappearance among his disciples a couple of days after the
crucifixion when he is supposed to have preached, eaten among them and even
invited them to feel for themselves by touching him to ensure that he was still
living in flesh and blood: during the forty days he had been with them before his
final ascension) remain real mysteries to any man. Especially so because a prophet
of God whose birth and whole life had been full of miracles (and Christians also
believe that he was the only beloved son of God) is found to have been forsaken by
God to die on the cross at the hands of his enemies, the blasphemous Jews, when
he had been on God's mission and it is believed that he was raised up to heaven
later. His ascension straight from the cross could have become yet another miracle
to convince without any doubt to the Jews that he was the true prophet of God sent
to them. Thus the last days of Jesus Christ (peace be on him) whether he was
crucified by the Jews or was lifted up to heaven by God, or a traitor and imposter
was crucified instead - as well as the questions whether he attributed sonship and
oneness with God to himself and whether he preached a new law at all or only
came as yet another prophet to the children of Israel, all remain conjectures accord-
56
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
ing to the four Gospels accepted by the Church. No doubt, according to the Gospel
of Barnabas, all these questions are answered crystal clear: that Jesus (peace be on
him) was another prophet to the children of Israel to revive God's laws as given to
them through the Torah imploring them to repent for the Kingdom of God is at
hand"; he was born under God's miraculous will; he grew up as well as preached
his Gospels accompanied by God's miracles, never claiming either sonship or
oneness with God; and most of all, he was not crucified but lifted up to heaven by
God. However, as stated earlier in this chapter, this version of Gospel is not
recognized by the Christian church. If it had been, the entire course of history of
mankind after Jesus Christ (peace be on him) would have been quite different from
what it is today!
57
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
on him) his followers had no separate place of worship and any separate identity of
their own is proven from the fact that it was after the fellowship was thrown open
to gentiles, mainly Greeks and heathens in Antioch, and after Barnabas had
brought Paul also to Antioch that the followers of Christ (peace be on him) had
been called as "Christians" for the first time (Acts 11:26). However, even after this
epoch-making event about the fifth decade C.E as well as during their earlier first
missionary journey, Paul, John and Barnabas "proclaimed the word of God in the
synagogues of the Jews in Cyprus" (Acts 13:5). In Antioch of Pisidia too the same
was the case (Acts 13:16-44). However, it was because the Jews reviled and
contradicted Paul that they had to turn to the gentiles as the last resort under great
opposition (Acts 13:45-50) from evangelists who had come from Judea to Antioch
and therefore Paul and Barnabas had to go to seek the decision of the apostles and
elders in Jerusalem on the matter (Acts 15:1-5). It is seen that the ascension that
developed was on the questions of throwing the movement open to all gentiles who
were not circumcised, whereas the Jews were, and the eating of foods that were
forbidden in the Mosaic law as being unclean. Then it was the Council of
Jerusalem under the advice of James that decided to exempt the gentiles from the
act of circumcision and to permit them to eat anything except what was sacrificed
to the idols, blood and what was strangled, and to refrain from unchastity (Acts
15:6-29) It seems that on these very issues, and possibly more too, Barnabas and
Mark had to part their ways with Paul and Silas after "there arose a sharp
contention" (Acts 15:36-40). After this incident, strange enough, the New
Testament does not state any reconciliation between the two groups and Barnabas
and Mark also do not get even mentioned thereafter. In any case, it is clear from
the above that a the beginning of the sixth decade C.E., the Christian Church,
which was formed only during the last few years, had already started dividing up
doctrinally into groups as the result of deviation from the path shown by Jesus
Christ (peace be an him) as to how and among whom the spread of the word of
God was to be directed. In conclusion therefore, it is clear that Jesus (peace be on
him) and his early apostles and disciples had neither shown nor directed any way
of life, devotion and worship different from the ways of the real Torah nor a
separate place of preaching other than synagogues of Jews. Thus, even as per the
New Testament essentially it was only the question of repentance and mending the
wrong ways in accordance with the Mosaic Law in letter and spirit that Jesus
Christ (peace be on him) preached during his short prophetic period aimed at the
children of Israel, alone.
As seen from the foregoing paragraphs, it was because of the fact
58
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
that the fellowship of the disciples of Christ (peace be on him), which originally
was confined to Jews only, was thrown open to gentiles after exempting them from
circumcision that a separate church including place of worship exclusive for the
Christians had to be established first in Antioch. Since then, on the basis of the
Pauline deification of Christ (peace be on him) in the holy alliance of the Trinity,
whereby Jesus Christ (peace be on him) acts as and on behalf of God though the
concept of Father, Son and Holy Spirit in granting unconditional pardon of sins to
his disciples, took firm ground as the linchpin of the Christian faith and worship
through an initiation ceremony called, Baptism.
It may be important in this connection to mention that during the fourth
century C.E., a. dispute also existed between the Antioch and Alexandrian schools
of churches on the questions of "inspiration" and "incarnation" in respect of the
"divine presence through the Holy Spirit" in churches. Earlier, during the latter part
of the first century itself, the followers of Christ (peace be on him) had split into
two main camps, one believing in him as "the son of man with no divinity attached
to him other than a miraculous prophet of God" and the other believing him to be
"the Son of God," the last spearheaded by Paul. It is a matter of critical history how
this split aggravated subsequently into a confrontation between them leading to the
success of the propagators of the schism whose faith and belief - "God is one in
essence but three in the person of the father, the son and the Holy Spirit'' and the
"uniqueness of God in Jesus Christ" - had come to stay ever since for tens of
centuries as the indisputable doctrine of the Church as contained in the
"Declaration of Creed" to be confirmed by all devotees at the time of the baptismal
initiation into the Christian church in total deviation from the acute monotheism of
the covenant and laws of the Torah preached by many a prophet of the children of
Israel from Moses down to Jesus Christ (peace be on them).
Notwithstanding the above, no one may ignore another fact of history that a
group among the Christians called the Hypsistarians, who considered Jesus (peace
be on him) as a prophet of God alone and refused to believe in the Trinity or the
assignment of sonship of God and divinity to Jesus (peace be on him) also did exist
up to about the fourth century C.E. They considered God not as "The Father,'' but
as a mighty ruler of the world, being the highest with no one equal to Him. Prior to
that, as the Gospel of Barnabas proves, he and Mark along with their followers
also did not believe either in the divinity of Christ or that he was the son of God. In
his Gospel, Barnabas even reports that Jesus (peace be on him) admonished
anyone
who
attributed
59
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
divinity to him and that he used to impress on all that he was nothing but a
messenger of God like his predecessors Moses, Abraham and others (peace be on
them).
It is also found that in later years Paul of Samosata who was the bishop of
Antioch, was of the view that Christ (peace be on him) was not God, but only a
holy man and prophet and that God could not have become a man. Again, Lucian,
the bishop of Antioch, well known for his sanctity as well as a reputed scholar who
was martyred in 312 C.E., was strongly against the belief in the Trinity. He is said
to have deleted all mention of the Trinity from the Church canons because this,
according to him, was a later interpolation not found in the earlier Gospels.
Further on, Arius, a disciple of Lucian (250-336 C.E.) and a Libyan by birth who
had a large following, also believed that "howsoever much Christ may surpass
other created beings, he himself was not of the same substance his God, but was a
human being as any other." In fact, he shook the very foundations of the Pauline
Church. However, in 325 C.E., Emperor Constantine, being a supporter of
Christianity without himself being actually a Christian, in the interest of carrying
on with his own administration, having desired to unite the different factions and
particularly the two contending strong factions of Christians, one under Arius and
the other under bishop Alexander, called a conference of Christians of all opinions
at Nicaea. Confused, but wanting to have the cooperation of Christians,
Constantine backed the larger section of them under Athanasius, who had
succeeded Bishop Alexander as the head of the Pauline Church, and banished
Arius from the realm. Thereafter the belief in the Trinity became the official
Christian faith of the Empire and was followed by the horrible massacre of
Christians who did not believe in the concept. Also, the possession of any version
of Bible not authorized by the Church became a penal offense in the Roman
Empire. It is said that over 270 different versions of the Bible including the
Hebrew versions were then burned. The Nicaean Council had decreed that the New
Testament as it is found today was the only authorized version of the Christian
Church. Nevertheless, the course of events changed when in 336 C.E., consequent
on the emperor accepting the faith of his sister Constantina and Arius. Arius too
was recalled but soon he was murdered. The emperor having known of the plot,
banished Athanasius and his two other bishops from the empire and himself
accepted Christianity of the Arius faith, whereby monotheism became the official
Christian religion of the Roman Empire. On the death of Constantine in 337 C.E.,
the new emperor, Constantius, who had also accepted the faith of Arius, called a
Christian conference at Antioch in 341 C.E. in which again monotheism was
accepted
as
the
correct
Christian
faith.
This
decision
60
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
was reconfirmed by another council held in 351 C.E. at Sermium. St. Jerome,
however, wrote of this in 359 C.E. that "the whole world groaned and marveled to
find itself Arian."
The mutual killings of Christians still fresh in his memory, Pope Honorius
wanted in the early seventh century to find a solution to the cause of dissension
and he tried to support the doctrine of "one God" because he believed that if God
had three independent minds the result would be chaos. Although this concept of
one God was not challenged by any for a considerable time, in 680 C.E. in another
Council of Churches held in Constantinople, Honorius was anathematized, a
unique act in the history of the Papacy when a pope was denounced by a
succeeding pope. Nevertheless, long after this incident, in 1547C.E., L. F. M.
Sozzini, a native of Siena (1525-1565 C.E.) who having come under the influence
of Camillo, a Sicilian mystic, challenged Calvin on the doctrine of the Trinity,
amplifying the doctrine of Arius and denying the divinity of Christ as well as
repudiating the doctrine of original sin and atonement. According to him, the only
object of adoration could be the one and only One God. He was followed by his
nephew F. P. Sozzini (1539-1604), who published a book on the gospel of St. John
denying the divinity of Jesus. With the assistance and collaboration of others like
him, such as John Sigismund, the ruler of Transylvania, who was an antagonist of
the Trinity doctrine, and Bishop Francis David (1510-1579 C.E.), also an antiTrinitarian, Sozzini formed in 1578 C.E. a sect known as ''Rocovian Catechism"
after the city of Racow in Poland, which was a stronghold of the faith of Arius.
Today, there are a large number of men and women among Christians who
believe in only One God, denying the divinity of Christ (peace be on him) as well
as the doctrine of the Trinity. However, they are voiceless and helpless under the
strong power of the Church. Even Athanasius, the champion of the trinity doctrine,
is reported to have said that in spite of all his efforts to mediate in the divinity of
Jesus (peace be on him), his toilsome and unavailing efforts recoiled on
themselves, making him incapable of expressing his thoughts, which made him
pronounce, "There are not three, but One God! From his close association with
many followers of Christianity, the author of this book has found that due to
similar contradictions between the faith propagated by the Church and the inherent
reasoning present in the individual particularly in the educated generation of today,
many an enlightened modern man does not bother much about what the
ecclesiastics of the church pressure him to believe, although he himself was born,
named, baptized, brought up and would even call himself a Christian.
61
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Development of Christianity
By the fifth century C.E., Christianity had finally surfaced as the state religion
of the Roman Empire from where it spread to the Mediterranean areas of North
Africa, the Middle East and the West Coast of India through evangelists. Only
Catholicism was existent then. Monotheists among the followers of Christ had to
conceal their faith due to the fear of possible persecution after the Nicaean Council
and the decree of Constantine. The Pauline philosophy of deification of Christ
(peace be on him) through the cult of the Trinity made Christianity acceptable to
heathen, Hellenic, Roman, pagan and Hindu polytheistic cults because the
Christian faith in the Trinity was a lesser evil than adoration and prayers to
multifarious gods, goddesses and deities. Further, the universal brotherhood that
was not only advocated but also practiced among Christians irrespective of the
social standing of an individual gave a big edge to the new movement over the
cults then prevalent among the people in the Middle East, Africa, India, and the
Far East. During the next ten centuries it spread to Europe in general.
Notwithstanding, since the seventh century C.E. when Islam appeared in Arabia
and it started appealing more to the people of North Africa and Asia in general and
particularly to those in the Indian subcontinent Christianity was obliged to give
way by and large to the newer way of life. Nevertheless, consequent on the
European conquests of Africa and Asia and subjugation of their peoples by the
conquering Christian powers, notably the Dutch, the Portuguese, the French, the
Germans and the British, Christianity spread farther, not only to the pagan areas of
Africa but also to the eastern colonies of the conquerors under the royal patronage.
Prior to the second century C.E., the early Christian evangelical activity was
confined to and aimed at the spreading of the message and teachings of Jesus
Christ, (peace be on him) as he did during his short three years or so of his prophet
hood, without any specific dogmas other than those of repenting and going back to
the Mosaic law in letter and spirit. Even after the movement was thrown open to
the uncircumcised gentiles and the heathens as the result of "the Holy Spirit''
getting filled into everyone present, including the gentiles, in the preaching
gatherings of apostles John, Peter, Stephen and others as a major deviation from
the ways of Jesus Christ (peace be on him) the evangelical mission of the apostles
was continued, even during the time of Paul, maintaining "Unity of Spirit'" only
without any dogmas, forms of worship and so on any different from the ways of
the Mosaic law as is evident from the letter of Paul to the Ephesians; ''The bond of
peace just as you were called to the one hope that belongs to your
62
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
call, One Lord, One faith, One baptism, One God and father of all and through all
and in all." It is crystal clear from The Acts of Apostles of the New Testament that
during their early days all the apostles and even Paul had to fight the allegation of
Jews that it was for abolishing the law and the prophets that Jesus Christ (peace be
on him) had come. Instead they had time and again to restate to the Jews that the
mission of Jesus (peace be on him) and themselves was to reestablish the true law
of the Jews in letter and spirit through repentance and joining the Kingdom of God
at hand, although during Paul's time the schism of "Deification of Christ through
the doctrine of Trinity" had in fact started. However, "The Essence of
Christianity," which developed in later years, does not appear in the New
Testament, which was addressed to "the lost sheep" among the Pharisees and
scribes of the Jews; to collect whom back to the fold of the herd had the Shepherd
Jesus (peace be on him) come with the clarion call, "Repent for the Kingdom of
God is at hand," and "Think not I have come to abolish the law and the prophets; I
have come not to abolish them but to fulfill them." It was in the first century C.E.,
during the time of Ignatius, the bishop of Antioch, that the Christian ways, quite
distinct from the ways of Jews was evolved, although neither Christ (peace be on
him) nor his disciples and apostles are known to have adopted this form. The dying
man is baptized into the death of Jesus Christ (peace be on him) and is set free by
the clergy from operation of the laws of sin and death, as a matter of ardent faith.
The Christian faith was soon evolved into "the faith in God getting absorbed into a
peculiar monotheism whereby the figure of the son, Jesus Christ, (peace be on
him) overshadowed the figure of God, the father, and thus caused the latter to
disappear, the Creator and Sustainer God receding behind the glorier figure of the
redeemer Christ, who, for all purposes, is believed to act on behalf of the father
God, at all times." Thus today, for a Christian, it is the cult dimensioned by the
belief and faith in Jesus Christ (peace be on him) as the full representative of the
living God in purpose and intent through the cult of the Trinity, which is the
Father, Son and the Holy Spirit equation, radically opposite to the Mosaic law, and
some glimpses into the very teachings of Jesus himself (peace be on him) on faith
in the Only One God, as found in the New Testament itself.
The clergy denomination of almost all sects of Christians attributes not only
the only fatherhood of Jesus (peace be on him) to God, but even goes to the extent
of calling Jesus (peace be on him) an object of divine consideration and worship
through the Trinity cult, which some Christian clergy and modern Hindu
philosophers easily compare to them concept of the Hindu trinity-Brahma, Vishnu
and
Shiva
a
concept
63
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
that even the Pauline philosophy did not know. On a close study of even the
canonical Gospels, one is convinced that Jesus (peace be on him) only clarified
certain of the Mosaic laws by making his followers understand how in fact the
letter and spirit of the law could be followed, as in the case of adultery, sin,
divorce, real prayer, good works, meekness, mercy, pity of heart, anger, killing,
pardon, piety, fasting, love and so on as found in the Gospel of Matthew under the
"Sermon on the Mount, In the Gospels one can find no new law at all other than a
few clarifications of the Ten Commandments, basically, as taught by Jesus (peace
be on him). The main emphasis made by Jesus (peace be on him) was, however, on
faith in One God, the Kingdom of God, repentance, love of God, the love of
neighbor and respect of parents.
Subsequently, however, propagators of the idea of "Public and Private
Religion," which developed in Europe during the seventeenth and eighteenth
centuries C.E. following the Lutheran revolution, were responsible for giving new
dimension to Christian values by defining "Essence of Christianity'' and
emphasizing the importance of spiritual, religious and moral life before God in
contrast to the earlier dogmatic definition of the theologians belonging to the
legally valid churches until then. Nevertheless, the twentieth century dogma
involved on the basis of "the absoluteness of Christianity" of Earnest Toelstch
(1902) that the Conception of Salvation through ''the uniqueness of God in Jesus
Christ," in order to compete with some other old religions, was, in fact, responsible
for considering Jesus Christ (peace be on him) an object of not only reverence but
also of worship as a deity of God much in the same way as say, in Hinduism. In
recent years some of the Christian exponents of " the coexistence group, who are
theologians in India, did even go as far as to compare Jesus Christ (peace be on
him) to the Vishnu incarnation Krishna of Hindu mythology, to derive inference
that they were both one and the same person, although such a contention appears
historically ridiculous because Krishna was a historic figure who existed about
3000 years ago, which is a thousand years before Christ (peace he. on him) lived.
Nevertheless, the fact cannot be disguised that this attempt was to give credence to
the view that like Krishna and other Avatars of Hindu scriptures, whom Hindus
consider as incarnations of Vishnu of the Hindu Trinity, Jesus Christ (peace be on
him) was the son of God of the Christian Trinity, a blasphemous belief which,
according to the Mosaic law and Covenant, should be punished by death.
"Jesus Christ was the only son of the living God; he was crucified by the
Romans on the insistence of Jews for the charge of claiming sonship of and
Oneness
with
the
Only
One
God,
which
was
punishable,
64
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
according to the Covenant between the children of Israel and God, by death. Jesus
died on the cross to save his followers from the original sin and pangs of death,
and therefore, the belief and faith in that the Lord, the Creator and Judge who
revealed Himself in Old Testament and lived among men as Jesus, the son and
resurrected one, with the Holy Spirit relationship between the father and the son
will relieve the believer in Christ from all sins and death pangs." It is with this faith
that at the time of death the Christian priest administers the ''Extreme Unction"
(Sacramental healing) to all Christians with the utmost faith that "as one is
baptized into the death of Jesus (participation in the death and resurrection of
Jesus), he is also "set free from the law of sin and death.'' What a faith radically
different from what Jesus (peace be on him) revealed while alive!
Nevertheless, next to Communism, Christianity commands the largest
following of people today, consisting of over 800 million belonging to the
(Catholic) Church of Rome, 133 million to the Eastern Orthodox (Catholic)
Church, 50 million to the Anglican Church, 42 million to the Lutheran Church, and
over 260 million to other churches and sects such as Baptists, Coptics,
Congregationalists, Evangelists, Jehovah's Witnesses, Methodists, Presbyterians,
other Protestants, Quakers and so on, irrespective of the fact whether all of them
sincerely believe in the cult, and without many, in fact, really knowing what was
the mission of Jesus Christ (peace be on him), what is the status of the Holy Bible,
what difference is there really between absolute monotheism of the Law of the
covenant and the concept of the Trinity and so on, except through what is
interpreted and taught to them by the undisputed spokesmen of the Christian
churches. No wonder, therefore, that a large number of the erstwhile adherents of
the Christian faith have fallen prey to the Communist doctrine, really believing that
Christianity is deficient as a complete code for the attainment of a welfare state
and pragmatic in explaining the supremacy of God over all the creations.
65
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Chapter 4
Communism
Introduction
A welfare state of plenty wherein peace, tranquility, freedom of thought and
expression as well as universal brotherhood prevail and one that provides equal
opportunity to all its citizens to earn as much income either in cash or in kind as to
obtain all and reasonable comforts of life such as food, shelter, dress, education,
health care, recreation and, above all, old age care for self and family has remained
the materialistic ideal of people of all ages. However, for the simple reason that,
having been endowed with the inherent instincts common to the world of animals
as a basic function of behavior in the specification of creation, the human being too
becomes inclined towards the exercise of acute selfishness, which in extreme cases
prompts him to be not only unjust but also to have recourse to exploitation or even
murder to deprive his fellow beings of their due shares. Such an ideal welfare state
therefore, has mostly remained above the reach of a significantly large cross
section of the human population so far. That oppression and exploitation cannot be
curbed through sheer force alone has been a fact known to all ages. Cultivation of
love on the basis of universal brotherhood and the inculcation of spiritual
consciousness in the mind of the human being alone cane tone down his animal
instincts. The history of mankind has shown that the Creator of the universe, in
fitness of things and in His extreme love to the finest of all His creations, the
human being, has never failed in His duty of guiding the human beings at any age.
This service was bestowed on the human-beings by God in the form of divine
guidance through reformers and prophets-who, through God's inspiration, have
provided guidelines of human conduct from God himself. The various reformers
and prophets sent from the time of the first man to a time when man had evolved
into his final complete self can thus be taken as a step by step guidance system
based on the divine Will. Such a service cannot be ideally performed by none other
than the planner, designer, and sustainer of everything in the universe.
66
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Unless one thinks deeply to find out what it the purpose of the life of man in
this world by looking around him, shedding off his own ego and purely material
approach to life, this secret cannot be discovered. When one concentrates on a
thought-provoking study of how many billions of different creations, tiny as well
as huge, work in unison within and without in perfect harmony complementing
each other to make the glorious universe a whole cannot but convince man of the
greatness of the Creator and puniness of himself. Even if they has come as random
events, there must be a cause, how, purpose and, most of all, a super architect
responsible for them, to have them created and to keep them in harmony and order.
This fact would be evident to those who ponder with their unbiased consciences
logically and systematically and then glorious fresh new vistas of spiritual
awakening should also dawn on them. For a balanced growth of the human being
his physical as well as spiritual faculties must work together. Any system that
ignores one of the other may only be incomplete. It does not really matter if the
God of the believers is renamed as the nature of the unbelievers because the
essence is the same. Everything in this universe is subject to the full administrative
control of the only One Creator and the Laws of this Creator are God's law or the
natural laws. But even the natural laws need to be controlled and put to proper
use by man for deriving benefits as well as for destruction, as in the case of the use
of a knife, which can cut a vegetable, mean or fruit, as well as harm a person. It is
the cultivation of safe use and prevention of the unsafe or destructive use that are
essentially contained in the guidance provided by God through divine revelation to
the prophets in an evolutionary process. Thus, the divine laws tend to regulate the
animal instinct in man within certain approved norms so that the human society as
a whole flourishes during the earthly life to continue its course on to the future life
after death.
At the time when the Marxist and Communist ideas of society and state were
manufactured during the nineteenth century and put into operation by the Russian
Soviets in 1917, there were more than one prime religion of national as well as
international acceptance flourishing in the world, the followers of each declaring
unequivocally that theirs was the best panacea for attaining not only the ultimate
welfare state of peace, prosperity, plenty and contentment, but also the ultimate
spiritual salvation. Further, at least one of these religions, Christianity, was then
the guiding religion for a vast population of the world and almost the only religion,
either through birth or bringing up or both, of the architects as well as the bulk of
the leadership of the Marxist and Bolshevik Communist state of Soviet Russia. It is
worth-
67
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
68
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
tatorship proposed by Lenin may transform the party of workers into a party over
them. This became one hundred percent true within hardly six years after the
Bolshevik Communist Soviets were established in Russia because as even Lenin
realized close to his death, Stalin had accumulated so much personal power over
the part that it had become well-nigh impossible to curb the tendency. Today the
myth has in fact exploded, as seen in Poland, where the workers of that
independent Communist bloc country are being ruthlessly suppressed from voicing
their grievances against the totalitarian Communist military regime that has been
installed there by the force of arms of the Russian Presidium of the Soviets! It was
shortsightedness, ignorance and a disregard of spiritual consciousness and a refusal
to learn from other current religious philosophies that made Lenin bulldoze his
utopian theory of Bolshevik Communism into operation in Russian in 1917,
hoping to transform that country into a welfare state. What in fact has since been
achieved over a period of more that six decades after that epoch-making event is
evident at all. The field trial of Bolshevik Communism in Russia followed by its
extension to Eastern Europe under a strict totalitarian dictatorship and the strict
guidance of dedicated specialist teams of ideologists, planners, militarists,
scientists, economists, administrators and secret service men all working under
regimented unison for sixty-five years with the full support of the armed forces but
without any regard to the spiritual values has today brought Russia under a spell of
continuing food grain shortage, which for the current year may be of the order of
many million tons, not to speak of other sectors of production. The only
remarkable thing that is has so far been able to achieve is in the field of stockpiling
destructive weapons aimed at the total destruction of civilizations, the welfare idea
Marxism, Communism and Socialism still being beyond a distant horizon.
Nevertheless, today seeing the failure of the sixty-five-year-old colossal
Russian and East European effort by 400 million for creation of the people's
confrontation-free welfare state and society visualized by the euphoric MarxistCommunist doctrine, one cannot but declare that prior to the evolution of the
doctrine 150 years ago by Karl Marx and Fredrich Engles by misreading the
human history and at least prior to the implementation of the Bolshevik
Communism in the U.S.S.R. By Lenin and his associates sixty-five years ago,
bulldozing the traces of any capitalism and religion altogether, had they cared to
study in depth the philosophies of the various religions that existed during their
times in general, and Islam in particular, to examine if there existed really any
philosophy and way of life that while gratefully acknowledging the existence of
the
kind
and
magnanimous
God
Al-
69
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
mighty, the Planner, Creator and maintained of the universe and man and
containing the dissertation for evolution of a classless confrontation-free welfare
state not only in a country or region but for humanity as a whole for all time, and
much superior to the Marxist-Communist concept, they must have surely
succeeded in establishing a truly prosperous and model one, based not on
confrontation, but on love and peace, within a decade or so. Instead, they opted to
evolve their own euphoric concepts under the influence of human history they
claimed that past history has been a continuous confrontation between men of
different classes of society for existence and that religion was a handicap for
emancipation of a model welfare society!
70
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
71
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Karl Marx
Karl Heinrich Marx, one of the seven children of Jewish parents, the father
being a lawyer, was born in 1818 in Prussia, a part of Germany. Heinrich, the
father, having converted to Christianity in 1817, the son Karl too was baptized as a
Christian eight years later. During the high school period, the writings of Karl
showed a sense of Christian devotion and his desire for self-sacrifice for humanity.
At the Bonn university he matriculated, in 1835, in humanities, particularly Greek
and Roman mythology and the history of art. At school he participated in student
activities and was jailed for a day for being drunk and a ruffian. In 1836 he joined
the University of Berlin to study law and philosophy. While in Berlin he got
exposed to the idealist doctrines of Hegel and he later joined the Doctors Club of
Bruno Bauer, a lecturer in theology who was evolving the idea that the Christian
Gospels were human fantasies developed for the emotional needs of man rather
than the chronicles of a historic Jesus (Peace be upon him).
72
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
The younger generation, influenced by Hegelian doctrines and the ideas of Bauer
soon became inclined towards atheism and a sense of revolution through political
action to change the existing corrupt society. Marx, however, succeeded in
receiving his degree in 1841. In his thesis, Karl said that he considered Prometheus
who had said, In sooth all gods I hate, as the noblest of saints and martyrs known
to philosophy.
From 1842, for a year, he edited a newspaper but, on its being suspended by
the government, he went to Paris to study French Communism. In Paris, having
associated with the Communistic societies of French and German workingmen,
Marx became more involved in raising the call for an uprising of the proleteriat,
with his assertion that religion is the opium of the people. After being expelled
from France under pressure from the Prussian government, Marx left for Brussels,
renouncing his Prussian nationality. There he associated with Friedrich Engels,
who had been initiatied into the Communist ideology by the Jew Moses Hess,
known as the Communist Rabbi. In Brussels, the common materialistic views of
Marx and Engels, fortified by those of Robert Owen from England, became
crystallized. They insisted that the stage of bourgeois society could not be skipped
over, that the proletariat could not just leap into Communism and that the workers
movement required a scientific basis and not moralistic phrases. The main books
and treatises of this period are The Holy Family, published originally in 1845, and
The German Ideology, written in 1845-1846. Marx even attacked the views of
Pierre Joseph Proudhon, who desired to combine the best of competition and
monopoly by accepting what is good in each of them while eschewing their bad
aspects.
The Communist Manifesto (1848) was next. In 1847, Marx and Engels joined
The League of the Just, a secret society composed of emigrant German workers
and craftsmen established in London; its name was changed to The Communist
League. The program of the League evolved by Marx and Engels enunciated that
the past history of man had been a history of class struggle and that the victory of
the proletariat must be the final struggle ending the class society for ever. It
criticized all forms of socialism founded on cobwebs as alienation and rejected all
kinds of social utopias based on small community experiments as reactionary
sects nullifying the class struggle.
In 1848, on revolution breaking out in France, Italy and Austria, Marx crossed
over to Paris, where he even opposed a project aimed at the invading of German in
order to liberate it. When the revolution reached Austria and Germany, he returned
to
Rhineland,
where
73
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
74
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Its martyrs are enshrined for ever in the great heart of the working class. He and
Engels considered it as the first example of the dictatorship of the proletariat.
His Das Kapital (1867), which is the main publication always referred to by
the working class (proletariat), details, among other things, the misery of the
English working class, which he believed would increase to a point where the
monopoly of the capital would almost choke production until the knell of the
capitalist private property sounds. The expropriators are expropriated.
He claimed that each phase of the development of production was associated
with a corresponding class struggle, leading necessarily to the dictatorship of the
proletariat and at last a classless society is evolved. This appears as nothing but an
endless rope with no hope of attaining the ideal. With no specific concrete program
synthesis (except for taking advantage of any situation becoming favorable to the
proletariat) for establishing the dictatorship of the proletariat, Marx's ideology did
not emphasize any useful idea for the systematic solution of even the problems of
the working class. In this process he entireley forgot the basic natural theory of
evolution that in spite of an along with the mountains, plains, the deep sea and the
cosmos constituted by innumerable creations, animate and inanimate, the fittest
will survive in accordance with the natural plan and through a will to exist, despite
other creatures and natural forces being not in most occasions favorable. Further,
no two things in nature appear equal in every respect and even if the entire wealth
of the world is bestowed on a person, unless his consciousness develops a blissful
outlook of contentment, he cannot really be happy or satisfied. It is not the
questions of the class that in fact matters, but the adjustment that may be brought
about between the classes to mold a uniform brotherly society. Class by profession
will always exists in a society but mental adjustment alone can get rid of social
distinction between high and low. Even according to the doctrine of Marx and
Engels, the classless society can only emerge when the proletariat assumes the
dictatorship on the conclusion of a perpetual struggle or even war against the
bourgeois. But the "taste of the pudding is in the eating of it," and we have now
seen the actual field trial operation of the Communist theory in the Russian soviets,
where for the last sixty-five years it is not the proletariat who is the dictator but
someone else who has nothing to do with the working class.
Again, the so-called beenfits of the dictatorship of the working class is evident
in the English scene, where even the governement is powerless against the
unilateral
decisions
to
strike,
which
are
made
75
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
according to the whims of the trade union leaders, who go about in Rolls-Royces
instigating the working class, asking for more wages not for essential needs but for
drinking and gambling, thus making anything manufactured in that country more
expensive than anywhere else in the world and forcing factories like steel, autos
and the like even in state-owned corporations-which once wee noted for cost
efectiveness, discipline and efficient work-to close down due to losses, making
millions of wokers jobless and leaving their families hard pressed and poor.
It was a pity indeed that while formulating the so-called portion of
theorethical Marxist Communism, Marx and Engels could not comprehend any
better solutions for attainment of the ideal welfare stat than the only one involving
the entire humanity in a perpetual confrontation and class war with the objective of
a party caucus, not necessarily from the real peasants and working class but a
coterie of intellectuals from outside the proletariat, sitting in judgment as directing
dictators with the calculated intention of keeping one class of the society under
perpetual subjugation and supression of the other. Educated and intelligent as they
no doubt were, they could also have certainly formulated the better alternative
leadin to the attainment of the same welfare state on the basis of providing equal
opportunity to all classes of the society to progress together, solidly resting on the
foundations of human love, justice and universal brotherhood, each class
contributing and supplementing the best to the overall prosperity devoid of any
oppression at all and cutting out altogether any possibility of settling one class
against another. Alas, the Marxist theory having been worked out under limited
comprehension and ackgrounf of its authors, naturally it could not visualize the
real implications of what L. Martov of the later Menshevik group that opposed
Lenin feared in 1903. It is human nature that even after the victory of the so-called
proletariat, many a contender will come up with the hope of rising to the prime
seats of power and the dictator may thus "transform the party of the workers into a
party over them," as was demonstrated even during the last days of Lenin, when
Stalin had acumulated so much power for humself that Lenin himself found it
impossible to reverse. Thus, the never ending chain of oppression as ha been
happening under the communist regimes, the latest being Poland, must continue
forvever.
Freidrich Engels
With Karl Marx, this socialist was the co-founder of the theoretical Marxist
Communism. He had been working behind Marx, evolving theories of Marxist
socialism
and
Communism
as
his
close
associate
76
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Lenin
Vladimir Ilich Ulyanov was born at Simbirsk in 1870, was renamed
"Ulyanovask,"and adopted the pseudonym "Lenin" in 1901 after his exile in
Siberia for clandestine party work. He had leanings toward atheism as early as the
age of sixteen. One of the five sons of a liberal-minded school inspector, he as well
as his brothers, who were all well-educated, jined the revolutionary movement of
the time because even the highly educated and cultured intelligentsia were usually
denied
77
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
the elementary civil and political rights in the Tsarist Russia of the time and even
Lenin's father was threatened with premature retirement shortly before his
untimely death, as the civil adminstration of the tsar feared the consequences of the
spread of education among the masses. His eldest brother, a university student, was
hanged for conspiracy in a terrorist group that plotted to assassinate Emperor
Alexander III of Russia. Lenin, naturally, had begin to react to the politcal setup of
his time, even at the early age of seventeen. He studied in St. Petersburg and the
Imperial Kazan universities. However, during his forced idleness (due to denial of
readmission in the latter university for the reason of having been expelled earlier
from the universities for participating in illegal student assembly) he associated
with exiled revolutionaries and the similar minded older generaton in Kazan and
elsewhere. Having read Das Kapital of Karl Marx, he became a Marxist in the year
1889. On being permitted to take the universiry examination in 1891, he pass the
law examination, taking frst in all subjects. In 1892, having been admitted to the
bar, he practiced law for a year or two on behalf of the of the poor peasants and
artisans. On shifting to Lenin-grad in 1893, he practiced law as a public defender
and there he made contacts with revolutionary Marxists who delegated him in
1895 to make contacts with Russian exiles in Western Europe in general and wit
the leading Marxist thinker, Gregory Plekhanov, in particular. On his return the
same year, L. Martov (who later became the leader of the Mensheviks who
opposed the Bolsheviks led by Lenin) and other Marxists succeeded in nifyin the
Marxist ranks to form The Union for the Struggle for the Liberation of the
Working Class, which issued pamphlets and proclamations on behalf of the
workers and supported workers' strikes after infiltrating into the working classes in
order to educate them on Marxism. On his return n 1900, he went to Munich
where, with comrades Plekhanov and Martov, he edited a newspaper, Iskara (The
Spark), in hope of unifying all the socialist and Marxist groups in Europe under
one cohesive Social Democratic Party with a common revolutionary objective.
Earlier, Lenin had produced some literature encouraging the workers to strike
and to shake their traditional veneration to the ruling Tsars because the imperial
power had been assisting the capitalists to make the life of the workers more
difficult. At the same tme, he had also been attacking the Social Democrats and
others who concentrated their efforts only in obtaining better wages and lesser
hours of work for the workers, leaving the political struggle to the bourgeois. He
also had his thoughts directed towards the problems of the peasants. Until
78
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
1890, Lenin had held the view of Plenkhanov that the the peasants and workers
should first bring about a burgeois revolution in Russia, establishing a democratic
republic and a strong capitalism of the proletariat ushering in the full socialism
only on attainment of a high degree of political organization, socialist
consciousness and culture among the proletariat. However, from 1894 onwards, he
differed from his earlier view because he felt that even after all the farms in Russia
were divided among the communes, socialism could not be established because of
the fact that the produce and sales markets would yet be in the hands of the
capitalists in a free market. For the purpose of self-interest, some of the
communes, he feared, would favor the growth of minicapitalists and therefore even
the communists would become "petty burgeois democrats." Thus, he believed that
unless the entire private ownership, means of production and market system were
all aboloshed and run on the basis of a collective state ownership, real socalism
could not be attained. Lenin's ideas did not, however, find favor with the majority
of the Marxist leaders at their first congress, held at Minsk in 1898. In the second
congress, held in 1903 at Brussels, which due to police interference was shifted to
London, Lenin's idea as contained in his 1902 pamphlet on party organization, that
"because the workers while unifying as the proletariat against the capitalist may
compromise on wages and duty hours, only a party formed without by dedicated,
conscious, honest and disciplines believers in Marxism should direct the proletariat
on how to bring about the revolution of workers against the capitalists and
continue to discharge the duty for a long time even after attainment of the power
by the proletariat so that any tendency either on the part of the capitalistss or the
minicapitalists again to raise their heads may by ruthlessly destroyed until the real
socialism becomes a password with the entire society, first at home and later in the
world", was also defeated by the group under the Pelkhanov-Martov-Leon Trotsky
leadership for the reason that "this would convert the party of the proletariat to a
dictatorship over the proletariat." However, as an initial conciliatory first step,
under the cloak of need, "a party of a new type," which while guided by a
"democratic centralism" or absolute party discipline on the basis of a highly
centralized body organized around a small, idealogically homogenous hardened
core of experienced and professional revolutionaries elected to the central
committee was led by a grass roots heirarchy of lower party organizations that
enjoyed the support and sympathy of the proletariat and all groups opposed to
Tsarism was evolved. Nevertheless, subsequently Lenin saw that the rival group
under Pelkhanov, Martov, and Trotsky charged that this proposal was
79
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
also conducive to a dictatorship over the proletariat and indicted that rather this
being a party of the proletariat, this system too may lead to the ultimate
establishment of a one-man dictatorship later on. Although defeated, the "Bundi"
group dominated by Jewish Social Democrats having walked out of the second
congress, Lenin was left with a slight working majority for his group in the party
and thus he started working with the new Russian Social Democratic Worker's
Party. The two groups went on fighting within the party until 1912, when Lenin
made the epoch-making final split at the Prague conference, separatng his
Bolshevik Party (Majoritarians) from the Mensheviks (Minoritarians).
After the abortive revolution of 1905, Lenin was forced into exile up to the
year 1917, one of the main reasons for the defeat of the revolution being the split
between Lening and Plekhanov. The defeat of the revolution, however, also saw a
combination of repression and little reform introduced by the Tsarist
adminstration, which appeared to seal the fate of any future revolution, as a result
of controversies having devoloped within both groups over tactics and philosophy.
In the year 1914, consequent to the outbreak of the First Worl War, everywhere in
Euripe the socialists had begun to help the war efforts of the imperialists on either
side, ignoring their pledge made at the second congress to fight the capitalists.
Lenin therefore denounced his fellow socialists who were helping the war efforts
as "social chauvinists" who had betrayed the Second Communist International.
With very little backing however, he managed to cross into neutral Switzerland,
where in 1914 he met with some like-minded Bolshevik and Menshevik emigrant
workers. In the conferences of the antiwar socialists held in Switzerland in 1915
and 1916, Lenin did not succeed in his appeal "to transform the imperialists' war
into a civil war." The conference instead adopted the slogan, "An immediate peace
without annexation or indemnities and the right of the peoples for self
determination." However, with the undwindling hopes and vigor, Lenin continued
to work for educating the public opinion through pamphlets such as Imperialism:
The Highest Stage of Capitalism (1917), where he emphasized and proved that the
war was a result of the "Insatiable expansionist character of impersialism which wa
a produt of monopoly finance corporation." The Capitalist banks, having brought
the world economy under their direct or indirect control with the help of the
respective imperialists, had amassed fabulous wealth from the colonies, creating
rivalry between the colonial imperialist powers for possession of the colonies,
which was certainly a correct inference of what had been happening in the world of
conquests.
80
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
In 1917 luck at last dawned on the fate of Lenin. Early that year, the starving,
freezing and disgruntled soldiers of the Petrograd garrison having suceeeded in
deposing the Tsar with the help of the Germans, Lenin and his comrades managed
to cross into Russia via Sweden. A month later, the Tsar was forced to abdicate. A
provisional government had been fonned in Petrograd by a group of leaders of the
bourgeois liberal parties with the assent of the Petrograd Soviet, a council of the
deputies of workers elected in the factories of the capital, and similar soviets of
worker's deputies as well aa soviets of deputies of soldiers and peasants had sprung
up in other cities and towns in the country. The soviet of the capital having turned
over its power to the provisional government of the capital composed of
Menshevik and socialist revolutionary leaders of peasant parties who regarded the
revolution as bourgeois, they believed that the new regime should be headed by the
leaders of the bourgeois parties. Lenin put new life into his Bolshevik comrades
who accepted the authority of the new provisional government, although he
considered it as also imperialist and nonsocialist according to his Bolshevik
philosophy because it could not satisfy the immediate desires of the workers,
soldiers and peasants to divide and place the land and the factories among them.
As a real Soviet govemment alone could do this great job, Lenin cried, "All power
to the Soviets." Until 1917, the Bolsheviks of Lenin remained a minority in the
soviets; however, due to war weariness and a breakdown of the economy, the
overtaxed peasants, workers and soldiers demanded a change and the moderate
socialist leader Aleksander Kerensky had been losing his popular support. But as
Lenin suggested that Kerensky still had the ability to complete the revolution, the
latter contended that only a free constituent assembly elected after the return of
order alone would have the power to decide Russia's political future. However, the
demand of the Lenin group for immediate peace, land and bread without delay had
been receiving increased support among the workers, peasants and soldiers. Lenin
himself remained underground since mid 1917, having been accused by the
Kerensky government as being a German agent, until the Bolshevik majority was
voted into the Petrograd soviet in late 1917. Lenin believed that a "dictatorship of
the proletariat," or the direct rule of the armed peasants, workers and soldiers,
alone could rid the Soviet society of capitalism and imperialism and that in due
time this armed rule would eventually build into a "noncoercive, classless, stateless
communist society"' in the whole world, as expounded in his pamphlet State and
Revolution, which was written during his time of hiding, a philosophy that history
has proven during an expensive sixty-five year period to be merely ''Utopian." In
the
81
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
meantime, Lenin had also peen preparing the Bolsheviks to start the revolution in
due time with a full armed takeover of power in the whole country by enlisting
soldiers, peasants, sailors and Bolsheviks workers into a "workers' militia,"
training them under the guise of "Red guards" for the self defenee of the
Petroguard Soviet, with the collaboration of Trotsky, who was the new Bolshevik
chairman of the soviet. On November 7 and 8 of 1917, 2 the Red Guards,
Bolshevik soldiers and sailors deposed without major resistance the provisional
goverpment, proclaiming that the power had passed into the hands of the Soviets.
By now the Bolsheviks had obtained a majority in the All-Russian Congress of the
Soveits and the delegates therefore had no difficulty in electing the forty-sevenyear-old Lenin as the first chairman of the "People's Commissars," the new Soviet
government that approved his decrees on peace and land. Lenin steered the
government towards consolidation of its power and negotiations for peace.
In 1918, the freely elected constjtuent assembly of Soviets met and when the
Mensheviks and socialist revolutionaries who constituted the majority rejected
Lenin's Sovietism, he dismissed the assembly and negotiated peace, a humiliating
one indeed, whereby a large part of the Westem Russian etnpire was to be
dismembered. Although his opponents and communists refused to agree, after all,
Lenin was able to win the support of the central committee to accept the Treaty of
Brest Litovsk, guaranteeing peace, as Russia was no longer able to fight a war.
Soon after, when Lenins government decided to repudiate foreign loans taken
by the Tsarists and the provisional govermnents; as well as to nationalize foreign
properties in Russia without compensation, civil war erupted, the rivals being
determined to bring down the government. The civil war of 1918-1920, during
which 'the Bolshevik altthority was reestablished by Lenin, was fought nithlessly
at the cost of millions of lives, untold destruction and human sufferings. Attemps
were made on the life of Lenin, from which he escaped death. In spite of active
assistance in money, support troops and material from the capitalist allies of the
opponents (the Whites), consisting of former Tsarist generals, admirals and their
supporters, Lenin was able to suppress the uprisings, ruthlessly with the help of the
Red Army under the conunand of Bolshevik Leon Trotsky. The next step for Stalin
was to provide food for the workers; due to a lack of money he started forced
requisitioning of surplus food grains from the peasants without payment. After the
final defeat of the Whites, due to resistance from the peasants themselves who
threatened mass rebellion, Lenin was forced to retrace his steps for a time towards
capitalism,
announcing
the
new
82
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
economic policy not only stopping the forced requisition of grains but also
permitting the sale of surplus food grains by the peasants on the open market.
Another success of Lenin came on the international political front, when in 1921
he won recognition of his new Soviet government by all major imperialist and
capitalist powers except the United States of America. Lenin, however, failed in
hopes of forging ahead united proletarian revolutions abroad on the pattern of a
world socialist movement as originally envisaged by him when he had such an
Utopian idea in his view. This was mainly because, with a dangerous precedent of
totally repudiating international economic agreements and unilateral
nationalization of foreign propertites in Russia, even at the embryo stage of the
first model communist pattern of politico-economics, the capitalist world had
already encircled the U.S.S.R., isolating it to such an extent that it became almost
impossible for the Bolsheviks to attempt any immediate export of the proletarian
revolution to other countries for creating similar chaos as existed in Russia.
However; the fear of the capitalist world of importing active communism if they
interfered actively in Bolshevik politics of the U.S.S.R., forced the former also to
keep their hands off from meddling in the internal affairs of the government of
Lenin. While this kept the U.S.S.R. isolated from the capitalist world, it gave a
breatthing space for Lenin to consolidate the Bolshevik power in Russia.
Notwithstanding the above, in order to break his isolation, Lenin exhorted all the
revolutionaries of the world to form parties all over the world that could emulate
the only proletarian revolution in the world-the Bolshevik revolution of the
Soviets. Earlier, to mark and highlight his break with the Second International of
1903, Lenin had also formed the third Conununist International of l919, which
accepted affiliation only of parties that had accepted the decisions of his party as
binding, imposed strict discipline in the party and broke clearly from the
viewpoints of the second International. Prior to this, in 1918, he had also renamed
his party as the Russian Communist Party (Bolsheviks). The program of the Third
International had some creditable effects on the colonial world Asia and Africa and
particularly in the Indian subcontinent, which, taking the clue from the Russian
revolution and its own local ideas, started its own national movement soon after
the end of the First World War demanding independence from British Colonial
rule, gaining gnrlmd slowly and steadily until the country became independent in
1947, creating two sovereign states of India and Pakistan. After the Second World
War, which ended with the defeat of Germany, Italy and Japan by the Allies,
which included the Communist Russia under Stalin and the capitalist powers,
mainly
England
(and
its
empire),
France
and
83
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
the United States of America, the Russian Bolshevik Communism had been
emulated by all countries of Eastern Europe, namely Albania, Czechoslovakia,
Hungary. East Germany, Poland, Yugoslavia and Romania. This was followed in
Mainland China, known as the "Peoples China," North Korea, Manchuria and
Vietnam in the east and Cuba in the Americas, which put together have today a
total population of over a third of the world.
Towards the last days of Lenin, when he was still the party chairman, he
himself had come to realize that his utopia of a one world socialist (Communist)
society was never to be realized. By about the year 1922, within only five years of
the installation of a Bolshevik dictatorship in the name of the proletarian
revolution presided over by himself, inefficiency and corruption had already set in
to the Soviet government. And soon after the appointment of Stalin as the general
secretary of the Soviet Communist Party, Lenin himself had to see helplessly that
Stalin had started accumulating and concentrating too much power into his own
hands. No doubt, Lenin must have become totally disillusioned and even must
have had his deathbed nightmares over what his old opponents, the Mensheviks,
under the Plekanov-Martov leadership, had forewarned and feared as early as 1903
at the Second London congress: that the party dictatorship that Lenin had been
preaching with dedication would ultimately make the "party of the proletariat a
party af a dictator over them." Although Lenin even desired to replace Stalin, time
had already run out, leaving the paralyzed Lenin to see the sounding of the death
knell of his lifelong utopian hope of a world socialist community ever springing up
at the hands of the dictator Stalin, who had gained all the power necessary to steer
clear of any conspiracy to replace him. Thus; much against his own will to
continue in power in this world; in 1924 he had ultimately to bow down to the final
decree of the ever watchful and Supreme God whose very existence had been
denied by Lenin and his comrades and take his exit to face the consequences of his
apostasy and rebellion with his Creator, whether he liked it or not, not as a healthy
person but an unfit paralytic!
His successor, Stalin, as stated earlier, accumulated too much dictatorial
power for himself and in fact ruled as a dictator over the party and the proletariat
in accordance with the doctrine of Lenin, ruthlessly suppressing and purging any
opposition. He even nursed what was known as "Stalinism.'' which in turn saw its
enemies during the rule of his successor, Nikita Khrushchev. How the East
European countries were brought under the heels of the Moscow leadership is well
known to history and today how in Poland the fearful prophecy of Plekhanov
84
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
and Martov of the Mensheviks opposed to Lenin, that party dictatorship by the
professionals may ultimately convert it from a "party of the proletariat to one over
them," has in fact been fulfilled through repression of the free workers trade unions
by the Communist dictatorship at home under active support from Moscow with
the help of the army.
With a shortage of almost everything including food grains, fifty tons of
which need to be imported every year, the model utopian communist state of
plenty of the socialist thinkers, given shape as a pilot project at the cost of
hundreds of thousands of human lives, time and money in Russia over a span of
sixty-five years, has remained a field trial and nothing but a failure today. The
Communist bloc has been able to develop satisfactorily to an extent of selfsufficiency nothing other than formidable military power to suppress freedom of
nationals as well as to wage a destructive war over all these six and a half decades.
A trial of a theory might have been good but once the theory has been proven as
impracticable in spite of dedicated direction by a dictatorship of professionals,
militarists, politicians, economists, philosophers, scientists and what not for over
sixty-five years, is it not a pity and disgrace that the totalitarian Communist
leadership is still bent upon wasting the valuable life of the human race of this
scientific and technological age to further whip the dead horse that had been kept
alive as the result of a mythical hope of attainment of a welfare state, rather than
bowing their heads to natural foundations and accepting defeat honorably at last?
But who will bell the cat? Has man yet learned from the past history?
As Stalin, Nikita Khrushchev and Brezhnev have all treaded on the dictatorial
footsteps of Lenin as totalitarian rulers, without much doctrinal contributions to the
utopian Communist and socialist theories from themselves, we leave them to
history as political dictators not much different from Kaisers or Tsars.
Mao Tse-Tung
Mao Tse-Tung, or Mao Ze-dong, the Chinese revolutionary thinker and
undisputed leader of nearly a billion Chinese people prior to his death, was the
prime architect of the New China. Mao was born in 1893 in Hunan province of
China in a poor family. His father had become rich as a grain dealer. Attending a
village school at the age of eight, Mao studied the Confucian classics. At thirteen
he had to leave school to work in his family farm at the insistence of his father. As
he disliked the traditional work of the family, as a rebel against his parents, he
85
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Left to study in a neighboring higher primary school, later joining the high school
in Changsha, the provincial capital. It was here that Mao got himself exposed to
Western ideas of revolutionary reformers such as Sun Yat-sen and Liang Ch'ichao. Soon, the revolution of October 1911 that had broken out against the
Manchu rulers spread to Changsha too. Leaving studies, Mao, who admired the
warrior emperors, Napoleon and George Washington, enrolled in the Hunan
revolutionary army. Six months later, the new Chinese Republic was born and this
ended Mao's military service. For a year, he went drifting from a police school, a
law school, a soap-making institute, a business school and a high school. Due to a
sudden changeover from eastern to western methods in the schools, the young
generation had difficulty in deciding the best line for preparing them for a good
career and the young Mao had also the same problem. In 1918, however, he
graduated at a level higher than secondary from the Changsha normal school in
Chinese history, literature, western ideas and philosophy. At school Mao had taken
part in the activites of student organizations and, anong others, he had foimed in
1917-1918 the "New Peoples' Study Society" with some friends who followed his
leadership through to the Communist victory of 1919. Thereafter, Mao continued
his studies at the university of Peking where he was influenced by Li Ta-chao and
Chen Tu-hsiu, who were the two main figures in the Chinese Communist
movement. His joining the university coincided with the start of the May Fourth
Movement of 1919, a vigorous student movement protesting against the decisions
of the Paris Peace Conference to hand over the former German possessions in
Shangtung to Japan rather than return them to their natural owners; the Chinese.
Chinese radicals had therefore no support for the western liberalism, favoring
Marxism and Leninism as a solution for the problems of Chiba. This led to the
founding of the Chinese Communist Party in the year 1921. Nevertheless, the May
Fourth Movement, which was initiated by Chen Tu-hsiu, soon became one in
which the Chinese students actively participated. While at the university, Mao was
responsible for bringing together students, workers and merchants through various
organizations aimed at forcing the government to oppose Japan. Fleeing from
Hunan to Peking after leading a campaign against its military ruler, Mao, who had
been an admirer of the Russian Revolution became a full-fledged Communist in
1919/20, having become convinced of "the Matrxist interpretation of history." In
1920 he became the principal of the primary school of his native province in
Changssa, where he organized a Communist group. In 1921 he attended a meeting
of representatives from the other Communist groups in China, which was also
attended
by
two
86
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
87
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
the central role. In fact, when the revolutionary civil war did actually erupt, with
the help of millions of Chinese peasants in the countryside who sympathised with
the Mao movement, he was able to encircle the cities, defeating Chiang Kai-shek
and winning the civil war.
It took twenty-two years for Mao Tse-tung and Chu Teh, the army
commander in chief, to gain control of the government of China. Begun in 1927, as
a guerilla war from the countryside, when the central Kuomintang committee in
Shanghai ordered the Red Army to occupy seyeral major cities in south and central
China in the hope of starting a major workers' revolution; Mao disobeyed the
orders and withdrew in 1930 to his base in southern Kiangsi, abandoning battle as
he feared costly loss of lives. This was followed by formation in 1931 of a Chinese
Soviet Republic in part of Kiangsi province with himself as the chairman. His Red
Army with a strength of 200,000 men had then been controlling an area of several
million people. However, although Mao was able to defeat Chiang's forces in four
of the major battles, he could not stand the assault of another battle in which
Chiangs special militia was to be pitched against the Red Army. Therefore in
1934, Mao decided to withdraw along with his pregnant wife and the Red Army to
northwest China, abandoning his Kiangsi base, the operation being known as the
"Long March." The few thousand troops who survived the rigors of this fatal
march anived in northwest China in the autumn of 1935. In August 1935 the
Comintern, at its seventh Moscow congress, and the Chinese Communists, on one
of their "Long March" halts, agreed on the formation of a united front against the
fascists. The following year saw the Chinese Communists agreeing to accept the
Nationalist Party under the leadership of Chiang Kai-shek as a constituent of the
"United Front." In December 1936 the kidnapping of Chiang himself by the
military leadership of northeastern China which wanted to fight Japan for the
recovery of that part of China under their occupation rather than the Chinese
Communists, hastened the unity between the Kuomintang and the Communists.
When in 1937 Japan had started her attempt to annex the whole of China. The
Kuomintang-Communist reconciliation pact to oppose Japan had already been
concluded in September of 1936. The Chinese army had been mobilised to reach
between half and one million men by the time the Japanese surrender was brought
about with the active cooperation of the Chinese army and the Chinese peasants,
working hand in hand. By then the communist ideology bad penetrated among the
vast population of rural workers and peasants.
Between 1936 and 1940 Mao produced a number of books and pamphlets,
such
as
On
Practice,
On
Contradiction;
Strategy
Problems
88
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
89
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
victorious in the civil war agamst the Kuomintang, which at the climax of the
Sino-Russian rift in 1962, Mao condemned as an "attempt on the part of Stalin in
1945 to block the Chinese Revolution." Nothwithstading the rift, soon after the
Communist victory, when Mao became the chairman of the Chinese Peoples
Republic in December 1949, he visited Moscow where he and Stalin concluded the
treaty of mutual assistance and limited economic aid after a deliberation of two
months. Shortly after this, with Russian assistance and centralized planning despite
a lack of expertise in large economic development for themselves; the Chinese
embarked on installing heavy industries, forging ahead with land reform, collective
farming and other matters, largely following the Russian methods subject to
certain local adjustments. However, on 31 July 1955, Mao decided to accelerate
formation of the agricultural cooperatives by exhorting the Chinese people to
implement his own plans and policies even though his own comrades often
opposed them. In 1956, soon after Nikita Khrushchev succeeded Stalin as the party
secretary in Russia and denounced the latters purges of the Soviet Communist
Party in Russia since 1934, Mao declared his policy of letting the people express
ideas freely or "letting a hundred flowers to bloom" in order to prevent
development in China of any oppressive era similar to that of Stalin. Although this
was also an attempt to seek the cooperation of intellectuals and experts with Maos
policies, it worked otherwise because its critics now questioned the very leadership
of the cotmtry remaining with the Communist Party. Having received scant
cooperation from the intellectuals. And experts, in 1957 Mao set himself on the
road to the "Great Leap Forward," which concentrated on the economic
development of the country through labor-intensive small units of production
enterprises requiring a good degree of local initiative as against the earlier capitalintensive heavy industries. In 1958, his new policies based on "people's
communes" were set in motion and these spread quickly to the countryside. In
contrast to Lenin's Russian model of the intellectuals and specialists leading the
workers and the workers leading the peasants, who were traditionally supposed to
be backward, Mao handed over control of both political and economic affairs to
party secretaries at the commune levels who were mostly peasants themselves.
Unfortunately for Mao, his new policy backfired as the industrial production
suffered due to the hasty introduction of the communes in the countryside as this
system was not field tested earlier in Chinese environments. Natural calamities
also played a part in poor production of grains leading to food shortages. As
opposition to his policies mounted, Mao was forced to adopt conventional
solutions to overcome economic problems including centralized planning and
providing
material
incentives.
90
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
What has been happening in China since the death of Mao Tse-Tung is
probably a realtzation of the truth of life. The Chinese Communist leadership has
at least, probably, realized in hardly thirty-three years of costly trial at home that it
is not in the abolishment of private property alone that the principle of socialistic
society can develop. Unfortunately, the Russian Communist leadership has not yet
realized this basic fact even after sixty-five years. Further, elsewhere in the world
there are many instances that have landed a whole prosperous, hardworking and
serious people in a dwindling economy, idleness and a "don't care" attitude due to
the replacement of the capitalist rule (bourgeois) by the working class (proletariat)
rule. What in fact has happened in these and communist models is that the switch
has been made from the "private" to the "socialist" channel, the totalitarian,
despotic and cruel administration of the capitalist having been taken over by what
is called the "Communist" administration, whereby even freedom for the
expression of ideas freely and criticism of the bad methods of the administration
by the individual, which had been available with the former, bas been made
punishable crimes by the latter. If man is forced to work and live against his own
nature, how can he succeed in his mission? Selfishness being a quality built into
the specificatian of man, control of his selfishness within acceptable social levels
by the state and providing incentives for the individual to putting his best in every
sphere of work are two of the important natural methods of attaining a welfare
state of contentment and prosperity.
The very concept of Marxism and Communism is based on a prolonged class
war in which the proletariat class would eventually come out victorious over the
bourgeois class and then the latter has to be kept suppressed from raising its head
on the principle of "the end justifies any means." Whereas moral values guided by
spiritual concepts do not permit the human being to resort to any foul means is a
principle with the theist, the atheist who believes that every creation is its own
master cannot even appreciate such a principle. It is only love that can bind the
millions of human beings into one world fraternity, and love is due to selfishness
alone. A feeling of "something is mine, I love it" alone may tempt one to live and
this is selfishness. No doubt. Without it, no matter, father, children, wife, family,
friends, human fraternity will not survive! The same principle is true as far as
property is concemed. If something is mine, I work for it and otnerwise not. If this
feeling of ownership is removed, who will care for anything? But the human
society limits the arena of operation this selfishness in quantity and value so that
the rest of the human fraternity too enjoys life to some reasonable extent.
There is nothing more needed, perhaps, than an example that
91
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
"Communism" is not the panacea for the political, economic and social illness of
human being: A totalitarian party rule which while ignoring the individual has
tried to create a Communist society in Russia under the strict guidance of
dedicated specialist teams of ideologists, planners, militarists, scientists,
economists, technicians, administrators and the secret service men all working in a
regimented unision for sixty-five years suppressing public opinion and without
caring for spiritual values, has today brought the communist Soviet Russia and her
camp followers into an unfortunate situation. Apart from other consumer goods,
even in the field of food production they have to depend upon the capitalist world
for millions of tons of food grains to feed their population, which is only about a
third of the total world population. In what are they self-sufficient except war
materials and destructive weapons?
Sixty-five years is almost more than the useful life span of a man of today and
how much more time is to be wasted in this sort of futile trials when the utopian
socialistic welfare state of Marxists and Communists is yet far far away beyond the
horizon?
92
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Chapter 5
Confucianism
Not a cult or religion in the strict sense of the terms, Confucianism may be called a
cultural movement with an underlying philosophy to order the lives of a people
and was the product of the thoughts of a teacher named Confucius of China, who
lived between, probably, 551 and 497 B.C.E. Called "Ju," in Chinese meaning,
weaklings, the followers of this cult were originally specialists in ceremonies,
music, archery, charioteering, history and numbers. Confucius was, probably, the
first in China to teach the six arts to all including the aristocrats and the common
man as well as to apply them to government and social development. His
followers, the Ju, were so called because of their meekness. Confucius, who was
the founder of a branch of this school, in fact wanted to convert the "weak" Ju into
a group of moderates, if not very strong, for which reason his movement was
launched. His teachings are summarized in the Chinese word "Jen," which means
love of humanity, human-heartedness and goodness. The essence of the teachings
of Confucius is in two parts: one is to be true to one's own morals and the other is
to treat others as one treats oneself. After the death of Confucius, the cult broke up
into two divergent groups: "The Great Learning,'' which was social and political,
and "The Doctrine of the Mean." which was religious and metaphysical. The first
group concentrated on "manifesting one's clear character, renovating the people
and doing the highest good" through the eight steps of investigation; extension of
knowledge, sincerity of the will, setting the heart right, cultivation of the self,
family harmony, natural order and world peace. The second group, probably
initiated by the grandson of Confucius (483-402 B.C.E.), defines it as "The Central
Harmony," by which it is understood that one's central self or moral being is
considered as "The Great Basis of Existence," and the harmony or order as ''The
Universal Law in the World"; realization of both results in the conception of the
universe becoming a cosmos, leading to attainment of full growth and
development by everything therein. The basis of this concept is absolute,
intelligent and indestructible realness, sincerity or truth. Only those whose selves
are
real
can
fulfil
their
own
nature,
the
93
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
nature of others, the nature of things and thus partake in the creative work of
heaven and earth.
During the third and fourth centuries B.C.E., further developments took place
whereby one group under Mencius taught nourishing the mind and exerting the
mind to the utmost, while the other group under Hsun Tzu taught discipline
through ceremonies, music, religious rites, law and rectification of names. Hsun
Tzu was naturalistic, nearly on the lines of Taoism. Subsequent years saw a shift
from Taoism to Confucianism with the Yin-Yang philosophy of negative cosmic
force (Yin) and positive cosmic force (Yang), resulting in the development of'
Tungs Theory of correspondence between nature and man in which every human
event is supposed to have its counterpart in nature and vice versa. In this scheme,
the ruler corresponded to heaven, both being YANG, the father and husband
becoming the standard but the mother and wife becoming the subordinates.
In 186 B.C.E., the Han rule proclaimed Confucianism as the state doctrine and
due to the state patronage, the cult dominated Chinese ethics, education,
government, and became, to a certain extent, the religion of China. However,
during the ninth century C.E., when Taoism and Buddhism threatened
Confucianism, the Confucian Han Yu persecuted the followers of the two rival
cults, which have shown a decline ever since. By then, Buddhist and Taoist
philosophies and ways which remained popular had already penetrated deep into
the Confucian cult as well as the ways of life. As a result, a neo-Confucianism
dominated Chinese life during the Ming period (1368-1644 C.E.), which
emphasised practical application of knowledge and the use of scientific methods.
Continued modifications and synthesis with the Western logical concepts have
continued, particularly through the efforts of the nineteenth and twentieth century
philosophers like Sun Yat-sen, Liang Shu-Ming, Fung Yu-Lan and Hsiung ShihLi. Thus, teachings of Confucius still prevail in Chinese society today.
The central theme of Confucianism is Jen, meaning love, humanity, humanheartedness, benevolence and so on which, in other words, is tantamount to
"Perfect Virtue," particularly the three Confucian universal virtues of wisdom, love
and courage and the five constant virtues of love, righteousness, propriety, wisdom
and good faith, the general virtue being the source and foundation of all goodness.
In short "Jen is that by which a man is a man in the original goodness of his nature,
or it means love, affection and universal love," as Mencius puts it. Love is
considered as man's native virtue because it is inherent in his natural goodness,
which is endowed by heaven. The great characteristic of heaven and earth
according
to
Confucianism
is
to
produce
and
reproduce,
94
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
an expression of love, and in partaking in the process, man inherits this virtue. In
other words, the philosophical expression of "Heaven is my father, earth is my
mother, all people are my brothers and sisters and things are my companions" of
the neo-Confucianist Chang Tsai in fact explains the ethical goal of Confucianism
to form one harmonious whole with heaven and earth. In the sphere of day to day
living, the Confucian ethics concentrate on moral obligations inherent in the
relationship between the ruler, the minister, father and son, elder and younger
brothers, husband and wife as well as friend and friend. The virtue of filial piety is
particularly respected and all these virtues and obligations are considered on a
reciprocal basis.
Confucius avoided discussion on spirits and life after death. Although he
taught men to respect spirits, he advised to keep them at a distance. He used to
pray to the heaven, and therefore he apparently believed in the power of Heaven
and its mandate. Thus resulted the worship of Heaven, honoring of the ancestors
and commemoration of the great men by Confucians. Ancestral rites are performed
sincerely, not because ancestors will give them rewards and punishment in return
for good or evil, but to continue the human relation, which should not be
terminated on death, so as to provide a foundation for the moral life as well as to
remember the origin of our life, because filial piety is the first of their virtues.
Temples were built for great men and seasonal rites also performed for them, not
as gods, but only to honor them. Confucius too, is honored accordingly as the great
perfection, ultimate sage and foremost teacher, but never deified.
Confucius neither claimed for himself any prophethood, nor mentioned God.
Confucianism has no scripture, church, clergy or creed and therefore is not an
institutional religion in the sense generally conceived of religions.
As Confucianism is a way of life aimed at virtuous living and a society
maintaining tranquility within the community, nation and the world, it is devoid of
what is called the spiritual aspect of life and therefore the entire concept of the
society is modelled on the pattern of a complete family life, in which the state is
equated to a family and headed by a sovereign comparable to a father. The
government should be benevolent, aiming at the welfare of the people, who are
more important to the state than the ruler or the territory. The sovereign does not
rule, but reigns by the mandate of Heaven and whether this is so is to be judged
from whether or not the people are happy and people abroad are attracted towards
the country. A ruler failing in the mandate should therefore abdicate in favor of a
virtuous man or be overthrown by revolution, if need be. The ruler should be kind
and
the
subjects
95
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
loyal. Moral examples and not force should remain as the chief instrument of the
government. The laws should be made by good men and governmental laws should
be few and the punishments light. In other words, the government should be in the
hands of educated and virtuous men. In the old Confucian society, therefore,
selection to the civil service was through competitive examination and the military
officials were subordinated to the civil service. Like a family, the state is a single
indivisible unit and as a whole, the moral aspect of Confucianism is thus apparent.
Confucius himself never mentioned God, nor the life after death, nor the
rewards and punishments after death, nor redemption of the soul, nor God's
pardon, and for the reason that there is no divine scripture associated with him, the
way of life shown by him is not a religion as a matter of fact. Nevertheless, it
served as a great force in ordering the home, society, institution of the state and
human behavior on the basis of high morals and, of course, for elimination of the
animistic and pagan worship of the different objects of nature through a unique
concept of the prayers directed to the Heaven, which was very necessary for the
ordering of the vast people of his era.
96
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Chapter 6
Hinduism
Hinduism, in its present various forms, with a large following of people in India
and a good minority in Sri Lanka, Bangladesh, Malaysia and Indonesia, can easily
claim a total world population of over 600 million. It may be considered as a way
of life and culture predominated by a mixture of the many forms of worship of
different objects of nature, known and unknown, in the shape of deities; it was
practiced by the inhabitants of the countries mentioned above and modulated by
the Vedic cults that were originally brought into the Indo-Ganges plains of India
by the migrating Aryans during their trek from Central Asia to the east through
Turkistan, Iran and Afghanistan, 3000-4000 years ago. During the early Vedic and
Epic periods, the Hindu life of the two highest castes or echelons of the society,
under scriptural sanction, had been divided into four distinct stages called
Ashramas, namely, Brahmacharyam, Grahastham, Vanaprastham and Sanyaaam.
Hinduism seems to have spread from India to the Far East and Sri Lanka during
ancient times.
Evolution of Hindu Religion
Although the exact dates cannot be determined, the evolution of Hinduism
may be categorized, perhaps, into the following three broad divisions:
The Vedic period
The Epic period
The period of the six systems
97
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
98
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
dawn (Ushas) born of night generates the sun and the morning sacrifice. Heaven
and earth, containing all, are the universal parents, the sky being the father, the
earth the mother and the dawn the daughter; Vayu (the wind) fathers the storm
gods, Soma the plants and Saraswathi the rivers; gods are sons of immortality and
skill. Agni is the son of night, Pusan of freedom, Indra of truth. In the latter part of
the Rg Veda, the world is depicted as a giant from whose members sprang up the
universe. From his mouth lndra and Agni (the fire), which also became Brahmana
(the priest class); from his arms Rajanya (the warrior or Kshatriya class); from his
thighs the Vaishya (traders, artisans and agriculturists); his head became the sky,
his navel the air, and his feet, which also produced the Shudra (the menial and
untouchable workers), the earth. All gods, particularly Varuna, are moral,
undeceitful and friendly to honesty and righteousness. The Rg Veda also says,
elsewhere, the Purusha, the primal man, was fused from the figure of Narayana
(scion of man) with Prajapathi, who is the lord of beings and the patron of
procreation. For the ritualist Hindu, therefore, Prajapathi was in the forefront as the
highest god of creation and was even the father of all gods. As the complex one
whole, Prajapatbi was therefore identified with the highest of gods. As per the Rg
Veda again,by dividing himself up, Prajapathi created the universe as well as all
beings and then he became disintegrated and differentiated as "ALL" of the
phenomenal world, exhausting himself to prepare for a new phase of creativity by
means of a rite of sacrifice where he was identified as the rite itself. Thus, by
identifying himself with the rite, a sacrificer may, temporarily, reintegrate within
himself Prajapatbi through a restoration of oneness and totality between himself
and the universe, which is the essential spiritual theme behind the sacrificial rite of
a Hindu. In general, the Vedic gods lack individuality and clearness of outline even
casually, not to speak of appeal to reasoning. The Rg Veda identifies more than
thirty-three gods, but the figure also goes on increasing later. Vagueness and
confused overlapping of jurisdictions exists in the definition of Vedic gods. While
all gods have some common attributes, none has any absolute monopoly, however.
Side by aide with gods, goddesses also exist. The Rg Veda implies a life after death
available only for penitents, heroes and donors of sacrifices. Though the earlier
hymns mention the burial of the dead, cremation is preferred because the soul can
ascend to the heaven with the smoke.
Vedas, which may be translated as ''knowledge," are, according to some
Hindu philosophers, the earliest documents of the human mind that we posses. Of
the four Hindu Vedas, the Rg Veda, far from being an expression of primitive or
unsophisticated
religion,
contains
some
99
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
100
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
of confused minds relying on the powers of a multiplicity of gods who are believed
to have specific prerogatives that may be evoked by the devotees through recital of
hymns of praise, devotion, propitiations, sacrifices and so on without the need of
the Supreme God at all. This is certainly a concept of a primitive race that had not
been blessed at all by any divine revelation through a prophet of God. It is baffling
indeed because, in Yoga, like mesmerism, when the highest order of concentration
may be achieved with or without any object to be concentrated upon physically,
why could the Vedic man not evoke through meditation the Transcendent God
directly without there being a demigod in between? The question becomes
hopeless when even the modern man of perfected intelligence and science
considers that the absolute power and prerogative of the Transcendent God is
delegated at the will of the devotee to any mythical being represented by even an
idol that cannot help itself, whatever be the reason assigned to this process!
Each Veda contains three parts: Mantras, Brahmanas and Upanishads, of
which the Mantras are also called the Samhittas. The Brahmanas include the
precepts and religious duties and the Upanishads the philosophical aspects.
One important aspect of belief that is not found in the Vedas, but introduced
subsequently through the Epic especially the Geetha and the Upanishads , is the
doctrine of the transmigration of the souls, which has predominated ever since the
spiritual philosophy of Hinduism.The fact that Buddha was deified by the Hindus
as the ninth Avathar of Vishnu long after his death, gives a certain clue that this
concept as well as the transmigration doctrine were introduced along with the
concepts of the Rama-Krshna Avathars into the Hindu philosophy during the
compilation of the Epics and Upanishads-perhaps at the time of the decline of
Buddhism in India-particularly because history has no conclusive record of the
exact period and authors of the Epics as well as the Upanishads nor even the Six
Systems.
101
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
objects of worship. There are scores of other gods, goddesses, demigods, animals
and other objects such as Bhadra Kali, Bhagwathi, Chandi, Durga, Chamundi,
Ganapathi (elephant form), Ganesha, Hanuman (monkey), Kali, Krsihna, Lakshmi,
Lingam (male organ of procreation), Parvathi, Skanda, Pashupatbi, Rudra, the
cow, the eagle, peacock, snake, certain rivers, mountains, trees, plants, and so on
which are either worshipped or held sacred by the Hindus.
Vishnavites and Shivites are the two main Hindu religious sects that appear to
have been evolved as the result of the fusion of Harappa cults of Phallus and
Pushupati, which are the Vedic cults of Rudra and Shiva, as well as many a postVedic Shiva cult from different parts of India known under different regional
names. The worship of Vishnu goes back to Vedic times and that of Shiva to even
earlier. As evidenced by the Lingam and Pashupathi excavations, Harappa culture
is found to be associated with Shiva worship in procreation and lord of cow
aspects respectively dating back to pre-Vedic times, as Shiva does not find a place
in the early Vedas. The Rg Veda prominently mentions nature gods such as the
thunder god, Rudra. Shiva is mentioned only subsequently. The Rg Veda mentions
Vishnu as a minor deity but only as an aspect of the sun god. The important Vedic
gods Mitra, Varuna, Radra, Indra, Agni, Prajapathi and Savidar gradually loose
their importance while some others Uke Vishnu and Varuna later change their
character altogether. Finally, the trinity of Brahma, Vishnu and Shiva replace the
rest. Brahma, who does not occur in the Vedas, seems to have been taken to by the
Brahmans and Kshatriya upper classes of the four-caste Hindu system. This
notwithstanding, presently even Brahma has lost importance, leaving Shiva and
Vishnu as the two important deities, along with the other popular gods and
goddesses
such as Parvathi, Ganesha,Skanda, Krishna,Lakshmi,Hanuman,
Ganapathi and others. However, there had been attempts to unify the various
godhoods into one and the result was the final emergence of one three-headed
Trimoorthi in order to bridge the intense sectarian Shiva and Vishnu cult
differences as well as rivalries. Still, it is an interesting phenomena that out of the
only two Vishnu incarnations in human form, namely Rama and Krishna who are
the central figures of the Hindu epics Ramayana and Mahabharatha, only the latter
is usually worshipped as a deity.
The nature worship manifested through the Vedas was superceded gradually
by the philosophy of the Upanishads (the Sacred Doctrines), which preoccupy in
themes like the nature of the universe and the destiny of the human soul. When the
identity of Atman and Brahma was established by the Upanishads, the true
knowledge
of
the
self
and
102
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
realization of this identity through meditation was substituted for the Vedic ritual
methods. In the Upanishads, although there is a dominating bias on the pantheistic
explanation of the universe, theistic as well as dualistic ideas find expression in
them. Incarnation of Brahma in Vishnu aspect as Avathars from time to tiltle as
mentioned in Vedic and other scriptures is conceded by the Bhagavat Geetha.
However, the Geetha does not spell out any incarnation other than Krshna. The
later writings, such asNarayaniya and Moksha Dharma which followed Bhagavata
Geetha, add the doctrine of Vyuha (expansion), according to which Vishnu exists
in four forms during his ascension to Brahama. Vishnu, identified with primeval
matter, was drawn from the womb of his mother and placed in Rohini. Vasudeva is
identified with Krshna. While Narayaniya also mentions ten Avathars of Vishnu,
another writing, Anugeetha, spell out only six.
The Upanishads
Developed about the fifth century B.C.E.in the Indo-Ganges valleys by the
Kshatriyas, who occupy the second caste in the Hindu social ladder after the
Brahmanas,the Upanishads ( the sacred documents) introduce Vishnu and Shiva as
the two symbols of Brahman, the Supreme Hindu God. They teach that knowledge
and wisdom can give enlightenment leading to union with God, a state that alone
may give relief to the soul from the agonies of rebirth,which is also the basic
objective of the Buddhist Samadhi. There are a number of Upanishads such as:
Aithereya, Brahadaranyaka, Chandogya, Isha, Jaiminiya, Katha, Kena,Maitrayani,
Maitri, Mandukya, Mundaka, Prashna, Radha, Svedasvatara, Taittiriya and others.
Another compilation of laws and penalities on social, political, economic and
religious ethics as well as morals enjoying as much importance as Vedas,
Upanishads, Geetha, and Brahma Sutra is the Manu Smrithi' of the sage Manu,
although the second, third and fourth of these, called the Prasthana-thraya (the
triple canon), carry almost equal authority. Some of the Upanishads written by
various thinkers are extinct, however.
The Epic Literature
The a Ramayana and the Mahabharata are the two religious epics considered
as the backbone of Hindu scriptures. While Ramayana deals with the life of Rama,
the
Aryan
Kshatriya
king
of
India
who
is
103
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
considered one of the incarnations (Avathars) of the Vishnu god in human form,
Maha-Bharata, is a narration of the Arya-Vartha in northern India during the
period about 400 B.C.E. concentrating on the life of Krshna, considered by the
Hindus as the moat complete human form of the ten incarnations of Vishnu. The
Bhagavat Geetha, sometimes considered as a separate scripture is, in fact, a part of
MahaBharatha and is considered as the personal utterances of Krishna himself
and therefore is greatly valued as the divine scripture of Hindus.
The Bhagavat Geetha
Believed to have originated about the fourth century B.C.E., this Hindu epic
strengthens the Hindu four-caste social system distributed according to the inborn
nature of persons; the doctrine of divine incarnation in which Krishna is the most
important and complete incarnation in human form; and the Karma recycling
process of the soul through Samsara (transmigration of soul from one body to a
new one after death) until the absolutely pure and selfless soul attains Nirvana
(complete Union with the divine Absolute, cutting off further rebirths); which were
all advocated by the Upanishads are stated in Geetha in a much more
philosophical, refined and accommodative manner. Although the Bhagavat Geetha
tries to highlight the doctrine of monotheism, it falls much short of the objective by
getting mixed up with the polytheistic beliefs contained in the Vedas and
Upanishads, Samkhya and the doctrine of divine incarnation, leading to worship
and devotion of all such incarnations, directly or indirectly as God Himself in
addition to scores of other Vedic gods, goddesses and demigods, which ia the act
of animists and polytheists. Further, the Geetha condones the worship of gods
other than Brahma, the Supreme God, by directing Arjuna to worship the Krshna
incarnation through the term "Worship me" and the laxity given to worship gods
other than himself, as in Chap. IX: 20, 21, 23, 25, and others. However, on a
concentrated and close study of the Geetha, no one can miss the one important
message conveyed by it that no one, other than the Only One Supreme God who is
the Creator and Sustainer of the entire universe, shall be worshipped and loved as
the Deity, although the writer and the poet who compiled the literature has
portrayed Krsbna as an incarnation of God in human form for which, being
contained in the closed well of Vedic learning and thoughts, he cannot be blamed
singly because even a slight glimpse into the lofty concept of One God must have
been too difficult in the era of acute polytheism. However, if Krshna of the
Bhagavat Geetha is considered as a prophet in the chain
104
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
of the innumerable prophets whom God has been sending to the world ever since
the creation of man, and the Geetha is taken as the message of God to the world,
the prophet only conveying it in the first person of God, then the incarnation aspect
disappears entirely, the concept of incarnation being considered as a schism
created by the overenthusiastic followers who continued to remain in the halo of
polytheism as in the case of the followers who deified Christ (peace be on him)
after his death more or less on the same basis through the Trinity. According to the
Geetha, devotion, worship and sacrificeare to be made to Krshna, who is the
incarnation of God in human form. The four caste system as well as the worship of
Gods, twice born, teachers and the wise approved in the Vedas are confirmed by
the Geetha too. The animal sacrifice enjoined by the Vedas is, however, toned
down in the Geetha to sacrifice only to Krshna. The Geetha declares that there is
no creature either on earth or again among the gods in heaven free from the three
modes born of nature, that the activities are distinguished in accordance with the
qualities born of their nature and that the duties ofBrahmana, Kshatriya, Vaishya
and Shudra are all born of thenature of each. It also says that worship of God
through performance of one's own duty enables a person to attain perfection and
elevation to the Brahmana. Although the Geetha does not compartmentalise the
Vedic doctrine of the four castes as such, it leaves the whole thing wide open
without any contest. As much may be said on either aspect, the Vedic-sponsored
caste system still remained with firmer impregnable barriers between the four as
sanctioned or at least as approved by the Geetha too, there being no practical
mechanics suggested by the Geetha as how to get a Shudra elevated to the
Vaishya, Kshatriya and Brahma orders of the society.
That the Geetha is definitely an improvement on the Vedic concept of a
plurality of gods and goddesses who had to be adored, worshipped and satisfied by
animal sacrifices befitting the jurisdiction of each, is amply proven from the firm
instruction in it that the best way of getting
salvation, as stated in Chap. IX: 34, is to "Fill the mind with thoughts of Me, be
devoted to Me, give Me thy offerings, bow down unto Me having united the soul
thus, taking Me as the supreme goal so that you shall come to Me alone. The
Geetha suggests that the best way to attain union with the Supreme God is to do
one's duty without attachment, ego and desire, leaving the result to God, and
continuously striving for the attainment of wisdom so as to know the Lord God of
all worlds through faithful meditation (Yogam) with the inner self merged in God.
No doubt such a dispensation clearly gives a demarcation between the realm of
God
and
that
of
man
contrary
to
the
conten-
105
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
tion of the Hindu philosophers and sages that the Geetha teaches that man is a part
of God Himself. Seeking redemption from the mortal world of desire, ego,
pleasure, sorrow, jealousy, sin and so on to abide forever in peace under the eternal
pleasure of the kind and merciful God is also something entirely different from the
above metaphysics.
There is no mention in the Geetha in confirmation of the Vedic necessity that
everyone must go through the four stages of life (Aahrams)- Brahmacharam,
Grahastham,Vanaprastham and Sanyasam- enjoined by the Vedas. The Geetha
stresses the necessity of Yoga (renunciation) for obtaining wisdom, knowledge
about God, enlightenment and for getting a disciplined control of one's own mind
and self for which how to concentrate has also been indicated. It is stated that one
who has attained the ultimate wisdom through Yoga and has become a Yogi does
not bother about law or work, meaning that he goes into the state of a super ascetic
who, for all human purpose, should look nothing different than a lunatic, who
behaves and works without any purpose or objective, a miserable situation indeed.
The question of transmigration of souls of the dead into several further lives
through rebirths, one after another untilcompletely purified by the Karma cycle is
stressed by the Geetha while pointing out that even a fallen Yogi gets reborn into a
Yogi family. This as well as what is stated in IV:13 of the Geetha, ''The fourfold
order (born of the nature) was created by me according to the divisions of quality
and work. Though I am its creator,know me incapable of action or change," and
"But the Yogi who strives with assiduity, cleansed of sins, perfecting himself
through many lives, the man of wisdom resorts to me, knowing that Vasudeva (the
Supreme) is all that is" (VI:46; VIII:19), clearly show that there is no possibility,
even for the Supreme God, to pardon any devotee on the basis of sincere
repentance as well as Karma. Therefore, the only course open even to a Yogi is to
undergo transmigration of soul to live out to the very end of repeated life cycles
undergoing continuous agony and suffering until every bit of the past sins is
washed off through counteraction . Nevertheless, unless the person or thing against
which sin was committed is also alive in time and space as well as in effect along
with the doer himself, how and when the D day of the final redemption would be
at hand is a big question that nobody can answer. But as the Geetha itself points
out, "Such a great yogi soul is very difficult to find" (VII:19) and therefore, how
even a reasonable cross section of the large majority among the human race may
obtain ultimate solace in the kingdom of God knowing that, after all, man has to
live in this world subject to his inherent nature that is built into his specification by
God
alone,
is
not
answered
by
Geetha,
106
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
107
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
on the pre-Geethaic doctrinal literatures like the Manusmriti which lay down strict
rules of religious and social conduct of the Hindu society as well as drastic
penalities for contravention of them, the cursed institution of untouchability
continued to thrive with more vigor as sanctioned by the Geetha too, despite the
fact that it states that through Dharma, Jnana (knowledge), Karma (work) and
Bhakthi (devotion) the highest goal of redemption, subject to the law of Samsara,
may be reached also by the lowly born women, Vaishyas as well as Sudras,
although it is easier for the Brahmanas and devoted royal saints from Kshatriyas.
Thus, the ideas contained in the Geetha, while being highly philosophical in
nature and tending towards limited monotheism, are so very flexible in nature that
their spiritual interpretations have been adapted to suit divergent views of the
leaders of many a school of Hindu philosophical thought.
Thus, Shankara's (788-820 C.E.) views on the Geetha, as developed later by
Anandagiri (thirteenth century), Sreedhara (fourteenth century) and Madhusudhana
(sixteenth century) and others, are that action is essential as the means for the
purification of mind, but when wisdom is attained, action falls away; that Vedic
rites are meant for those who are lost in ignorance and desire; that the aspirants to
salvation should renounce the performance of ritual deeds and so on. On the other
hand; Ramanuja's (eleventh century C.E.) commentary on the Geetha, refuting the
doctrine of unreality of the world as well as the path of renunciation ofaction,
concludes that the Brahman is the highest reality of spirit with attributes of selfconsciousness, knowledge of himself and a conscious will to create the world as
well as to salvage his creatures. According to him, the Vedic gods are the servants
of Brahman appointed in places to perform specific ordained duties. Madbava
(1199- 1276 C.E.), however, interpretes the Geetha on the lines of dual:stic
(dvaitha) philosophy and contends that the Supreme and the soul are two entities
different from each other, partial or entire unity between them being untenable. He
sees devotion as the main theme emphasized in the Geetha. Nambarka (1162),
however, observes the dual-nondual (dvaida dvaitha) doctrine predominating the
Geetha and therefore, in his Brahma Sutra, he holds the view that though the soul,
the world and God are different from each other, the existance and activity of the
former two depend on the will of God. He also emphasizes the devotional aspect of
the Geetha. Vallabha (1479) develops the theory of pre-nondualism (Shudha
dvaitha), which considers that pure soul blinded by illusions andBrahman are one
and therefore that the release of soul that is a particle of God cannot be obtained
except through the grace of God, the Supreme, attainable through devotion alone.
There
108
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
are many other commentaries of the Geetha like those of M. K. Gandhi, Arobindo,
B. K. Tilak, S. Radhakrishnan and others, each of whom had drawn his own
conclusion from the Geetha to support the philosophy of each. Notwithstanding,
one thing common to all these different schools of thought is the consensus that the
main theme of the Bhagavat Geetha is devotion to the Supreme God through the
exclusive worhsip of the Krshna Avathar.
To one who goes through the Bhagavat Geetha intently, it should be quite
clear that the author wanted to convey the message that exclusive devotion to
Krshna, recitation of the Geetha and meditation of Krshna considering him as the
personal god can alone provide ultimate attainment of wisdom and enlightenment
whereby union with the Supreme God may be attained, getting rid of the endless
Samsara cycle.One cannot but suspect that this was an attempt of the author of the
Geetha and the Maha-Bharata to advance the cult of Krshna worship exclusively.
However, the contradiction between the various discourses in the Geetha makes it
a philosophical document to be interpreted in many different ways. On the theme
of Karma (work) it has two ideas, one opposing the other, namely, that after
attainment of enlightenment and wisdom the need for work ceases although one
may work for work's sake only and also that work is better than renunciation.
Generally speaking, therefore, there appears to be a lot of confusion in the concept
of the immutable God, personal gods, lswara, Keshava, karma, soul, jiva, state of
enlightenment, life after death and so on because of the fact that the idea conveyed
about each is ditferent on different occasions as well as interrelated at others. The
Geetha even goes to the extent of saying that "For the yogi who has become
accomplished as the result of having drunk the nectar of wisdom, no further duty
remains; if any remains, he is not a real knower of truth." Such philosophies are
difficult for the world dwellers to understand.lf work ceases altogether, then will
not the end of the world have come?
The idea behind the concept of God and his Avathars as enunciated in Geetha
are:
"Though unborn, and myself unperishable, though the Lord of all
creatures, yet establishing myself in my own nature, I come into being
through my power" (IV:6).
"Whenever there is decline of righteousness and rise of
unrighteousness, then I send forth myself' (IV:7).
''For the protection of the good, for the destruction of the wicked
and for the establishment of righteousness, I come into being from age to
age" (IV:8).
109
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Although ten Avathars (incarnations) of Vishnu have been spelled out in the Vedic
and other scriptures, the Geetha does not specifically mention any others than
Krishna whom alone it sponsors as the exclusive incarnation of the Supreme God
Himself and not Vishnu, to whom complete devotion for redemption is due. At the
s ame time, it is a point not to be lost sight of that although there are both the
Vishnu and Shiva aspects of Brahman as sponsored by the Vedic and other
literature, no Shiva incarnation is ever mentioned although the incarnations all
arrived for the destruction of evil forces. And even so, although Rama also is
considered as an incarnation of Vishnu in human form, usually he is not
worshipped except in very, very rare cases. Further, Rama is not mentioned in the
Geetha even once by name. The big question that still worries one is, for
destruction of evil forces and restoration of order, should the Almighty God
Himself incarnate at all? Can't he just order things so that they come into being as
natural events and finish the job?
110
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Ram Mohan Roy, Anne Besant, Arobindo, Tilak, Tagore, Ramanand, Radha
Krishnan, Gandhi and many others, particularly since the seventh century C.E.
when the full effect of the two dynamic religions, Chistianity and Islam, with
belief in One and Only God and universal brotherhood, started making inroads into
the polytheistic and caste-ridden Hindu society oflndia. Nevertheless, by and large,
faith in personal deities and plurality of gods and goddesses for varying purpose
has remained so attractive among the masses and even educated classes of
Hinduism that it is unthinkable that a Hindu can ever remain without having
installed in his mind the efficacy of at least a couple of gods and goddesses who
are believed to preside over material aspects such as life, safety, wealth and
fortune, disaster, knowledge and so on in addition to the Supreme Narayana,
Keshava, Brahman, Krshna, Paramathma or Bhagwan as may suit him, as well as
the great Vishnu and Shiva. No temple can be found in the large length and
breadth of India that has not at least one presiding idol of a god or goddess or even
both, which is personally propitiated and taken refuge in, in the heart of hearts in
times of happiness or sorrow by both the uneducated as well as the enlightened of
the masses.
111
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
businessman who must not have gone overseas or taken to eating beef in spite of
the penalty imposed on a Hindu of excommunication from the Hindu fold, as
prescribed in the scriptures.
In Hindu cosmology, every major deity has several forms of manifestation.
For example, Shiva is also Gangadhara, Mahadeva, Iswara, Neelankanta, Natraja
and so on. Similarly, Vishnu has several incarnated as well as other forms, each
referring to a mythical incident in which the particular farm or quality plays the
part. This is because Hinduism has a bias towards pantheism, at the root
necessitating the worship and propitiation of countless deities. Puranas, which are
old Sanskrit verses considered sacred and which detail the various Hindu religious
rites, extol each deity as the greatest, at convenience.
In Vedic and other scriptural literature, while Brahma or "Iswara" is the one
supreme Hindu God, Vishnu is also the god and pillar of the universe, identified
with sacrifice and in whose "three footsteps or strides all things and beings are said
to dwell, his abode being the realm of heaven in the third stride beyond the mortal
reach and knowledge." He is also associated with the ten incarnations of god of
whom Krshna, and very rarely Rama, the two incarnations in human form, is
worshipped and adored along with his consort "Sri," mainly by the Vaishnavites as
the supreme God himself. However, Svetasvatara Upanishad (about 400 B.C.E.)
started the Shiva cult, developed in the name of Rudra" of the Vedas who also is
described as the god of creation, preservation and destruction of the universe,
parallel with the then prevailing Krshna personal god cultured by the Bhagavat
Geetha in the name of Vishnu. However, the Bhagavat Geetha emphatically
declares that attainment of the pleasure of Brahman is easier through the worship
of the Krishna incarnation of Vishnu. These and other directives of many other
scriptures for the adoration and worship of scores of other gods and goddesses,
have also developed into strong traditions with scriptural sanction over thousands
of years with the same solemnity and devotion due to the One Supreme God. In
fact, these have provided to the Hindu ample scriptural authority as well as
incentive to substitute any convenient object in the name of personal gods for
every possible occasion in the place of the Supreme God.
During the fourth to the eighth centuries C.E., during the Gupta rule of India,
the Tantric as well as the Shakti devotional rites and cults as well as the
compilation of ancient stories called "Puranas" came into being. The Tantric and
Shakti cults, described in more detail later, were easentially associated with the
Shiva cult. Thus a strong rivalry between the Vishnu cult and the Shiva cult, each
claiming to represent the worship and adoration of the Supreme God, came to stay
112
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
in Hinduism, there being perhaps no worship directed towards the Brahman One
God without intermediaries.
Kinds of Hinduism
Vedism was the religion of the earliest Aryan settlers of the IndoGanges
plains about 2000 years B.C.E., their original religious texts being known as
Vedas. Later on Brahmanism was evolved out of, or perhaps, as a part and parcel
of Vedism itself, with a priestly elite from both Aryan and Indian stocks (remnants
of the Aryan stock may still be identified in ''Nambudiris'' of Kerala and perhaps,
others elsewhere too) to vouchsafe the interests of the ruling class called the
"Kshatriyas." The priestly order, generally known as "Brahmanas," originally
worshipped most probably, the One Supreme God Brahma and the similarity in the
two designations is of great interest. It is quite possible that the nomadic migrating
Aryans, on their way to the Indo-Ganges plains ultimately, must have had their
sojourn in the southern Caspian area of Iran and Iraq where they must have gotten
exposed to the teachings of Prophet Abraham ('peace be on him) and his divine
book and, later, to the teachings of others such as Zoroaster, thereby acquiring a
variety of philosophies prevalent in those areas The similarity between the words
of Abraham (peace be on him), Brahman and Brahmana is worth noting in this
connection. It was, however, in the Indian subcontinent that the two main doctrinal
categories of the Vishnavites and Shivites worshipping Vishnu and Shiva
respectively as supreme gods for all intents and purposes without the least thought
about the Brahman Supreme One God during the worship had developed. Here the
Vedic Hinduism which too had enough legacy of the worship of the gods and
goddesses supposed to personify the various celestial bodies became interwoven
with the animistic and pagan concepts of worshipping anything and everything that
is either awe-inspiring or believed to be capable of benefitting the human being or
warding off evils from him, a practice acquired from the middle east as well as
locally. Today there are many groups among Hindus each consisting of many
hundreds of thousands of people worshipping a variety of objects on the earth and
the heavens as gods and goddesses who are believed by the respective suppliants
as infallible and capable of answering their prayers apart from the Only One
Brahms or Iswara. Among them are the Tantra, Shakti and Bhakti cultists
concentrating on esoteric, magical and devotional aspects of worship as well as
rituals connected with both Vishnu and Shiva. Finally, the folk Hinduism of the
masses, being a mixture of the above cults with local folk beliefs
113
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
114
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
It may safely be said that the Hindu culture is a way of life rather than a
religion because one cannot find an easy way to become a Hindu through
proselytization as in the case of Christianity or Islam, which have certain
prescribed ways to do so that remain the same whoever wants to enter the folds of
these religions. Due to the four-caste system there appears to be no specific entry
point for a non-Hindu to join Hinduism because as no one would want to have the
pleasure of joining the rank of the untouchables, and the higher castes, particularly
the Brahmanas, being of the sacred "Twice Born," are barred to the new entrant.
Therefore, in order to consolidate as well as to attract anynew entrant to the folds
of Hinduism, the abominable caste system has to get abolished. Perhaps, it was due
to the impact of Islam during the rule of India by Muslims that toward the close of
the fifteenth century C.E. a proselytizing adaption of Hinduism called Sikhism was
evolved. Guru Nanak, a Hindu material reformist from the Punjab in India,
prescribed a standard method of conversion to his casteless cult with certain
distinguishing signs and dogmas and with a particularly martial spirit to not only
rival Christianity and Islam, but also to prevent the two new religions from making
inroads into the Hindu cultural life on account of them being more rational,
particularly in the field of creation of classless society. The Sikh renaissance
movement appeared to attract, for a short time, considerable Hindus to its fold
from the two lower castes for the reason that they had been groaning for centuries
under the acute social discrimination imposed on them by the Hindu caste system
backed by the scriptures. Nevertheless, the very fact of history that during the
period of five centuries the cult has not attracted more than fifteen million Hindus,
mostly from the two lower castes, to its fold out of the vast 600 million Hindu
population of India proves that even this new effort was not able to emancipate the
downtrodden hundreds of millions of lower caste Hindus of India, particularly of
the Shudra class.
Unless one goes through the four Vedas, the Upanishads, the two epics and
other scriptural literature such as the Manusmrithi, one may not be able to get a
complete picture of the almost rigid and impregnable cultural barriers posed by the
Hindu caste sytem sanctioned and maintained by scriptural penal codes against
their contravention, especially by the lower castes, as well as the elaborate
purification rituals to be undertaken scrupulously by the higher castes as a result of
pollution by the lower castes. The punitive scriptural law goes to the extent of even
laying down the punishment of pouring molten lead into the ears of a Shudra who
happens to steal into hearing when Vedas are recited by the Brahmanas. Under the
circumstances
remaining
ignorant,
how
115
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
a Shudra may attain "the highest goal'' of redemption through Dhanna and Kanna
as enjoined by the Bhagavat Geetha appears to be a mirage indeed. Thus, it is
nothing but a statement of fact that the Indian culture as seen today, built up over
tens of centuries through the cults of worship of scores of gods and goddesses as
deities, modulated by the Aryan four-caste system, refined from time to time to the
best of ability through the ceaseless efforts of patriot reformers who had been
proud and zealous of maintaining their own national identity has continued to
remain a way of life evolved through assimilation of a variety of cultures rather
than a religion.
116
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
finds expression in the strict observance of the caste system through rules of
pollution and purity to be practiced by one and all scrupulously, in performing
prayers and offerings as well as sacrifices to specific but mostly different deities as
required by the family caste tradition; in partial fasting; propiation to the dead
ancestors and personal or family deities as the case may be through offerings of
food and sacrifices; listening to public readings of Harikatha epics and the
scriptures and going on pilgrimage under vows to temples and shrines of famous
deities everywhere as well as for bathing in sacred rivers. As essential as the above
are the consulting of an astrologer and seeking the pleasure of the local or family
deity through appropriate prayers, offerings and sacrifices prior to the
commencement of specific important acts or during crises. For the commencement
of each act of import, the most appropriate and auspicious time is watched by a
Hindu through signs (Shaguna) of approval and nothing is undertaken against signs
that are considered as opposing. In the course of day to day life, certain animals,
particularly the cow, plants like Tulsi, reptiles like the snake and birds like
peacocks and eagles are always held sacred and never harmed. The intellectuals
concentrate on reading the Upanishads, the Bhagavat Geetha and the writings of
the great teachers (Acharyars) while also following the daily deity worship as well
as the customs of the general masses of the people, almost all of which have strong
scriptural sanctions. Sathi practice has, however, disappeared from the Hindu
society altogether consequent on its ban a long time ago by the British Indian
government, but the widow remains unmarried.
117
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
on the Brahmans and for stealing a hearing into the reading of Vedas by
Brahmanas are provided in the Manusmrithi, while drastic purification ceremonies
to be performed by the higher castes to reinstate the purity of the desecrated person
and the holy place have also been indicated. Under the circumstances, the
argument of the modern reformist Hindu that Hinduism does not advocate caste
distinction and untouchability is tantamount to an act of apostacy. In fact, it has
been an endeavour to counteract the superiority that Christianity and Islam have
over Hinduism on the matter of extreme equality between brother and brother on
the one hand and sister and sister on the other irrespective of race, colour, birth,
family or profession. Going into more details, it is seen from the Rg Vedic hymn
"Purusha Sukhtha that the four castes (Vamas) or orders formed the limbs of the
primaeval man (Purusha) who was a victim in the divine sacrifice that produced
the Cosmos. The Brahmana emerged from his mouth, the Kshatriyas from his
arms, the Vaishya from his thighs and the Shudras from his feet. Thus, the
impregnable four-caste system, acute untouchability, refusal of the higher castes
even to permit the low castes to worship in temples and to take baths in public
rivers and tanks, not to speak of eating together and free social mixing, have all
become accepted and deep rooted social evils in the Hindu society against which
the lifelong fight of Gandhi and,Vonobe Bhave did not bear much fruits during this
century. This was because of the fact that the supremacy of the Vedas having been
taken for granted by the Hindu masses, they are resigned to the inevitable fate
governed by the scriptural Karma-Samsara cycle through which they are morally
afraid of getting reborn and reborn as lower classes or even creations to face the
cousequenees of scriptural sins such as breaking of the firm caste barrier. So,
nothing can be done by anyone about it unless the lower castes convert to another
religion that promises them equality between man and man as well as a philosophy
that frees them from the Samsara doctrine altogether.
118
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
after having placed the society in the grips of pantheistic polytheism, the
impregnable caste system and the Karma-Dharma oriented Samsara
(transmigration of soul) rebirth cycle, the two new movements had quite a lot to
offer to mankind in the field of salvation through good work as well as the pardon
of the just, kind and merciful One God, in the fields of social equality and equal
opportunity in all spheres. Naturally, the two religions had great appeal to the
followers of Hinduism. Therefore, primarily to safeguard Hinduism from erosion
by the two new religions, as well as to remove some basic inconsistencies, quite a
lot of efforts involving reinterpretations and reequations of the various
contradictory and outdated doctrines existing in the Vedic, Upanishad and epic
scriptures which had hitherto been considered uncontestable became a dire
necessity of circumstance. This was first provided through what are called the
''Shakti" (energy) and "Bhakti" {devotional) cults.
Bhakthi Cult
The Bhakthi cult is one of the important modern phllosophies of Hindus
mainly in the North of India. Based on the Vishnavite devotionalism of the
Panchathanthra
school
of
the
twelfth
century
C.E.,
119
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
the Ramanuja version of the cult is derived from the qualified monism (Vishishta
Daita). While it is associated in northern India with Vishnu, particularly in Krshna
incarnation, in the south of lndia it is associated with both Vishnu and Shiva. Even
Shankara (78S-820 C.E.) who was the exponent of extreme monism (Kevala
Dvaita} is believed to be the author of some devotional verses sung in honor of
Devi, Shiva and Vishnu. The basic Vedic cults worshipping a variety of gods and
goddesses have, however, been sized down through the various revitalizing
movements to the minimal trinity (Brahma, Vishnu and Shiva) accompanied by the
worship of Vishnu represented by the Krshna incarnation, Shiva, the wives of the
deities as well as some of their progeny gods and goddesses.
Subsequently, as the result of contacts with Arab Muslim traders first,
followed by both Christian and Muslim evangelists and in later years as a result of
Muslim Arab, Afghan and Moghul as well as Christian conquerors from the
western areas of lndia, similar cleaningup Hindu movements had taken shape in
India spearheaded by philosophers such as Madhava and Ramanand (fourteenth
century C.E.), Arya Samaj of Dayanand Saraswathi, Brahma Samaj of Ram Mohan
Roy and the Theosophical Society of New York City, founded by Helena
Blavatasky of Russia and later shifted to India to be succeeded by Madame Anne
Besant (nineteenth century), Ramakrishna and Vivekanand and many others to
give new dimensions to the Hindu philosophy with the objective of consolidating
the Hindu society from the onslaughts of the more dynamic religions of
Christianity and Islam in particular and, as much as possible, to bring about
integration and toleration among the three prime religions of India. Although the
Hindu intelligentsia, mainly from the upper castes of Hindu society, was generally
enthusiastic about these new movements, the lower Hindu castes, particularly the
Shudras, found nothing much attractive in them because the irrevocable Hindu
caste system had grass roots in the masses and society with fears of rebirth as the
result of scriptural Samsara doctrine implanted in their minds. Therefore, the only
solution for emancipation of society and the individual soul from the age-old
bandages could be achieved only through entering the folds of either Christianity
or Islam. Thus, by and large, the occasional Hindu renaissance movements did not
become as fruitful as they were intended to be. The untiring efforts of the Arya
Samej through the Shuddi (cleaning up) movement to induce social, cultural and
economic incentives as well as advantages to the depressed and scheduled castes
on the one hand and vigorous private and public exhortations to the higher castes
to refrain from the abominable caste distinction as well as untouchabil-
120
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
ity, sometimes under martial pressures that have many a time led to communal
clashes in India have, however, not proven too successful except for very short
periods. The tendency to convert is still a cherished hope and characteristic of most
of the downtrodden members of the Hindu lower castes and generally it has been
finding realization very frequently in all parts of lndia whenever a favorable
atmosphere occurs. There was a time in the living memory of the present older
generation when the Harijans, as the untouchables are usually called in India,
under the leadership of Ambedkar, who had mustered the following of over six
million such miserable people, having threatened to convert to Christianity and
Islam, were prevented from doing so by the Indian Hindu nationalist leader M. K.
Gandhi who tried all he could, including a fast unto death, to coerce the Savarnas
(the upper castes) not only to abstain from the practice of untouchability and
discrimination between themselves and the Avarnas (the lower castes), but also to
throw open all public institutions such as bathing places, temples, schools and so
on to the Avarnas, unconditionally. The movement, of course, had some effect but
soon the tempo diminished and today, again, a similar situation has, in fact, come
to threaten the Hindu society of India. Since the independence of India in 1947, the
earlier efforts of the British government involving educational incentives; job
opportunities, special colonisation schemes and intervention of the civil
administration to quell unreasonable oppression of the Avarnas by the Savarnas
were reinforced by declaring the practice of any kind of social discrimination
unlawful. The laws now offer equal opportunity and even incentives to the lower
castes as well as the scheduled castes in all spheres of life. Nevertheless, the social
problem of religious discrimination, which has its root in scriptural sanction under
the spiritual threat of getting involved in the Karma-Dharma-Samsara vicious
circle always haunts the searching minds of all four castes of Hindu society,
making it impossible to root out this abominable social evil in its entirety.
121
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
in spite of acute social discrimination practiced on the basis of work and birth.
There is no redemption from sin except through living out in full through several
life cycles based on the doctrine of Karma and transmigration of soul from one
dead body into another until such time that the bad fruits of the entire sins are
tasted in this world itself and then one attains union with the Absolute God through
yoga so as to get rid of the rebirth cycle for good. That even the Absolute God is
not able to alter the course of events of the ordained law is amply proven from the
utterances of Krshna in the Bhagavat Geetha with the result that the Supreme God
has no compassion so far as Dharma and Karma are concerned. Thus for a Hindu
there is no prayer for the pardon from sins. The Hindu religion does not have any
institution called a prophet or a messenger of God. Instead, it believes in the
doctrine of incarnation of God in the form of a creature, who may be man, anima
or both as the occasion demands so as to destroy a particular evil or injustice and
to restore order in the world. There are ten such incarnations mentioned in the
scriptures (enlarged to twenty-two in the tenth century C.E.), two of which were in
human form with a full span of human life and the last, a white horse, yet to come.
The doctrine of incarnation as well as the Samsara (transmigration of souls)have
Vedic as well as Geethaic authority and the Hindu cannot have mental solace on
account of the Dharma-Karma-Samsara concept advocated by the scriptures. Thus,
the entire process of evolution as well as the life cycle, according to the Hindu
philosophy, is based on this trio cycle. The Dharma (duty) of any person is
identified with his caste in the society and thus the criterion of work is different for
different classes, the best having been alloted by nature and birth to the twice born
and all toils to the people of the two lower castes.
Some of the important aspects of Hindu philosophy that are associated with
day to day human life are the endless rebirths through the doctrine of
transmigration of souls as different kinds of creatures in relation to Karma (work)
performed during the previous life; the abominable caste system, which is so
impregnable that even God cannot alter it; abstention from consumption of certain
foods only by the Brahmanas; designation of one class of the society, the
Brahmanas as the priestly class, the Kshatriyas as the ruling and fighting class and
the exclusive allocation of agriculture, trade and artisanship to the Vaishya, and
Shudra untouchable class; worship of many thousands of deities as well as souls of
dead ancestors and their timely propitiation for profit; attribution of powers of
creation, sustenance and destruction to rival gods; denial of acquisition of higher
knowledge to the Shudra class; prohibition from going overseas under threat of
expulsion
from
122
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
the society (Bhrisht); canonical belief on astrological forecasts about the unknown
future through dice throwing and estimating the position of planets as well as the
scrupulous adherence to the conclusions arrived thereat; and most of all, the firm
belief that the deity worshipped as god or goddess must help the devotee to attain
the desired objective.
It is thus evident that for modern developed mankind that aspires to get
material emancipation by entering an era of plenty, prosperity and social justice for
all human beings, irrespective of color, race or profession and to get salvation of
the soul through work and mercy of God, the Hindu philosophy and ways
punctuated by social injustice and primitive polytheist and mythical concepts
regarding God and redemption does not fit into the scheme as such for adoption as
a meaningful international way of life providing social, moral and spiritual
satisfaction to the large masses of people inhabiting this world (which is
approaching five billion mark). It is quite likely that it was in realization of this
fact that as early as the sixth and fifth century B.C.E. two new religions,
Buddhism and Jainism, with some minor deviations from Hinduism but not much
in deeper details, were evolved in the north of India; these too, after thriving for a
couple of centuries under royal patronage from Kings Asoka and Kanishka, faded
away, only the former seeking new pastures in Sri Lanka, Burma andthe Far East,
without leaving much of their heritage in their birthplace of India except
archeological monuments and a short but glorious past history.
An attempt, therefore, was made again during the fifteenth century C.E. by a
Hindu reformist by the name of Guru Nanak to make improvements to the
spiritual, moral and social aspects of Hinduism by founding the Sikh way of life in
the Punjab area of northern India. Although known as a separate religion with an
entity distinct from its mother Hindu religion; Sikhism has been considered, by far,
as an adaption of Hinduism.
As has been explained earlier, in spite of repeated attempts on the part of
several Hindu philosophers and reformists since the eighth century C.E. onwards
to give new dimensions to the Hindu scriptural philosophy firstly by tryjng to
interpret the polytheistic and pantheistic worship of innumerable idols supposed to
represent demigods and goddesses of Hindu scriptures as nothing but another way
leading to monotheism, and secondly by arguing that the caste system advoc ated
by the Hindu scriptures rather than being discriminating is only a classification of
people for the convenience of the social life; the abolition of the scripturally
ordained Sathi ritual of self-immolation of women in the funeral pyre of the dead
husband
by
the
British
Indian
govern-
123
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
ment ahout two centuries ago on the one hand and more recently the action of the
government of the independent India in forbidding observance of the scripturally
ordained untouchability and segregation, making it unlawful to prevent the lower
castes from worshipping in temples or eating in restaurants or bathing in
community rivers and lakes along with the high castes and so on, on the other, by
way of copying such innovations from the other dynamic sister religions with
advantages aimed at social emancipation of the scripturally downtrodden lower
castes; these, however, have not enabled the contradicting and mythical Hindu
philosophy and irrational way of life of the religion of the Vedas, Epics and
Vedantha to reconcile with science, logic and reason of the fully developed
mankind of today.
124
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Chapter 7
Islam
The Religion
Islam, with about a billion followers today, and generally spoken of by nonMuslims as "Mohammedanism" due to their ignorance, is in fact the religion of
"Peace" as the very word in Arabic denotes--peace for oneself, peace for the
society, peace for the entire world and peace during the life after death. To put the
matter straight, Islam is not the religion evolved by its prophet, Muhammad
(Blessings of Allah and peace be on him) either as an invention or as an innovation
of his own, but "It is the religion With Allah," as declared in "Al-Quraan," which
is the holy scripture of Muslims believed to have been revealed to the prophet by
Allah through the archangel Jibreel (Gabriel). To call Islam "Mohammedanism"
is to call the religion propagated by the Torah and the prophet Moses (peace be on
him) "Mosaism." Islam recognises the "Sole One" planner, designer, creator,
sustainer and disposer of the entire Universe as well as everything in it and beyond
by the unique and irreplaceable "Quraanic" term of "'Allah," a concept perhaps like
the unique Torahic concept of Yahweh." For the simple reason that the term
"'God," with whatever sanctity and respect it may be used to denote the "One Lord'
of the Universe, because this may be also used to represent plurality, femininity
and to designate creations of the "Only One Lord of the Universe," it cannot be
used by Muslims to replace or even to represent the unique concept of Allah
whatsoever. It is thus a unique proper name and even in pronouns referring to
Allah, the words are written with an initial capital letter, as in the case of a proper
noun. No pronouns other than singular ones such as He, Ye, Thou, are used while
referring to Allah. However, in the Holy Quraan, Allah addresses Himself as both
"I" and "We," the latter to represent His all-embracing sovereignty, majesty and
power but not in the plural sense. The Quraan declares that "the religion before
Allah is Islam" (3:19) and that "You (Muslims) are the best of people evolved for
mankind enjoining what is right and forbidding what is wrong and believing in
Allah"
(3:110).
Thus,
Islam
is
"Submis-
125
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
sion of one's whole self to the will of Allah" (3:83) and '"Belief in Allah and what
is revealed by Him to (the last of the prophets) Muhammad (Blessings of Allah
and peace be on him), as well as what was revealed to prophets Abraham, Ismail,
Isaac, Jacob and the Tribes and in books given to Moses, Jesus and prophets
(peace be on them) from their Lord" (3:84).
126
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
as well as mother was looked after by the grandfather as the apple of his eye until
he attained the age of eight. However, on the death of the grandfather, his uncle
Abu Thalib took good care of the boy, and at the age of twelve he also took the
boy, on his insistence, on a business trip to Syria. It is reported that while in Syria,
the boy was spotted by a Christian monk by the name of Baheerah, who advised
Abu Thalib to protect the child from Jews, as he had found signs of the coming
prophet in the child and the Jews may, therefore, try to harm him. Except for this
and some other minor incidents that are not corroborated unanimously, the young
Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be on him) grew up among the pagan
Arabs of Makkah, without any miracles being associated. either during his birth or
during his early days.
As a youth, Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be on him) usually
turned away from unwholesome recreatory pursuits of boys of his age. His ways
and conduct were so perfect, just and honest that, rightly, he earned from the
Makkans the unanimous title of "Al-.Ameen,'' meaning "The Trustworthy,'' or
'"The Truthful."
Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be on him) had the profession of
herdsman of the family during his younger days and as reported he used to
recollect later, proudly-and-joyfully, " God has sent no prophet who was not a
herdsman ... Moses and David were herdsmen and I too was commissioned as a
prophet while I grazed my family cattle at Ajyad." At the age of twenty-five,
young Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be on him) became an employee
of a wealthy merchant lady by the name of Khadeejah to become her agent for
trade between Makkah and Syria. The extraordinary business success of the youth
resulted in his marriage to Khadeejah at her insistence, which turned out to be one
of the happiest of married lives, in spite of the disparity of ages between the two,
lady Khadeejah being forty and he only twenty-five at the time. Approval and
respect that young Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be on him) enjoyed
among the Qureish, young and old, as well as the other tribes of Makkah, is
demonstrated by the incident relating to the arbitration that he made when the
rebuilding of the Ka'abah was being done soon after his marriage to lady
Khadeejah. It is said that when the time came for placing the sacred black stone in
its place in the eastern wall of the Ka'abah, each of the tribes insisted, some even at
the cost of bloodshed, that this great honour should go to them, and Muhammad
(Blessings of Allah and peace be on him) was made the arbitrator unanimously.
With great intelligence, political foresight and ability he arranged the stone to be
lifted
jointly by the
representatives
of
the
contesting tribes
127
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
128
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
wrapped in your mantle! arise and warn. Glorify your Lord. Purify yourself. Shun
uncleanliness. Give not in order to have more in return. For the sake of your Lord
endure patiently." Again she consoled him, narrating what her evangelist cousin
had told her of the incident in the cave. She became the first believer in the prophet
Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be on him). Later, when Muhammad
(Blessings of Allah and peace be on him) had gone for circambulation of the
Ka'abah, Warqah Bin Nowfal, who was also there, personally assured his support
to the former, declaring that the same spirit who had gone to Moses (peace be on
him) had visited him also, that he was the prophet of the Arab nation and that the
struggle ahead would be very hard. The revelation stopped after that for a while.
However, the prophet had started on his mission of purification of self, reinforcing
his belief in the only One Allah and eschewing the idols in the Ka'abah and
elsewhere who could not see, hear, speak or help themselves. It was after a
considerable lapse of time when the prophet was in the cave of Hira on the same
"Mount of Light" that he received the next revelation of the ninety-third chapter of
the Quraan, "The Morning Light" or the "Forenoon," a reassurance to him that
''Neither had his Lord forsaken him nor had been displeased with him and that he
will be wel pleased with the bounty of the Lord . " Soon Allah taught His
prophet how to say his prayers and worship (Salat) his Lord, and on seeing him
and lady Kbadeejah praying together, his nephew Ali Bin Abu Thalib, who
became the fourth caliph later and was also living in the same house, embraced
Islam while still a boy. This was followed by Zaid Bin Harith, who was a slave
bought by the prophet before the revelation and adopted as his son. However, the
Makkan Qureish resisted the innovation of Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and
peace be on him) because it eschewed the traditional gods of their forefathers, 360
or more of them having been installed in the Ka'abah alone. Soon the first man
from outside the house of the prophet to embrace Islam was his trusted friend, Abu
Bakr, who became the first caliph on the former's demise twenty-three years later.
Soon after Abu Bakr's public announcement of his conversion, he started inviting
his friends also to embrace Islam and quite a few from the clan of Qureish as well
as others did join them, but for fear of enmity and antagonism of the clan
leadership, many of them used to hide the fact of their conversion. They used to
offer their prayers, therefore, outside the city of Makkah. Revelation of Quraan
continued in the meanwhile unabated, however. It was three years after the first
revelation that Allah commanded Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be on
him) to proclaim Islam among the relatives of the prophet and the masses openly
(Al-Quraan 26:214-216; 15:94).
129
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
The Qureish, on their part, challenged him when he took the initiative of
attacking their idols. They ridiculed him in poems and asked him to show miracles
similar to what Moses and Jesus (peace be on them) had done before or to
transform the mounts Safa and Marwa in Makkah to gold or to bring down the
calamity of his God over them and so on and so forth. The prophet, however,
remained solid as a rock, unmoved, telling them that he had been sent as a
messenger to warn them by conveying the divine message and as a blessing to the
universe rather than to be a diviner or invoker of curse and calamities. Although
his uncle Abu Thalib had not become a Muslim, he continued to provide protection
to his beloved nephew. Nevertheless, when the Querish finally showed their
determination to harm his nephew, Abu Thalib was forced to tell Muhammad
(Blessings of Allah and peace be on him) to save himself as he was not able
anymore to bear the burden which he could not carry. In reply to this, after a
serious pause, Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be on him) replied to his
uncle that even if they placed the sun in his right hand and the moon on his left, he
was not prepared to renounce the cause of Allah and retrace his steps. Hearing this,
the sympathy and love was aroused in his uncle, who blessed him in his mission
and swore not to betray him to enemies, a promise which he upheld thereafter.
Islam being a scientific process and method based on intense investigation by
observation, classification, comparison, experimentation and drawing of sensibly
logical conclusions from the results, the call of Muhammad (Blessings of Allah
and peace be on him), guided by revelations of Allah, the originator and sustainer
of the universe, from time to time, was nothing but the call to get into harmony
with the nature in all walks, of human thought and action and be went on appealing
to the Arab people. Their deep-rooted orthodoxy and paganism, although acute in
the beginning, began to be overpowered by the nucleus of exemplary and seJfless
society that was being established by selected few persons from many tribes of
Arabia under the banner ot Islam and leadership of Muhammad (Blessings of
Allah and peace be on him). However, the incorrigible pagans under the leadership
of the Makkan Qureish stalwarts continued their oppression of Muslims, some of
whom, being their slaves, were mercilessly beaten and tortured as they refused to
retrace their steps to paganism and leave Islam. When the persecution of Muslims
increased, the prophet asked his followers to disperse to tbe rest of the world and
on his advice, a small group of them sought refuge in Abyssinia. Negus, the
Abyssinian king, gave protection to the Muslim emigrants until they returned to
Makkah after a while, on hearing that Umar Bin Khattab, who
130
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
became the second caliph on the demise of Abu Bakr in later years, had embraced
Islam. But their calculation had gone wrong because on the conversion of the
strong and passionate Umar, the Makkan Qureish had split into two powerful
opposite camps, one under the Muslims Abu Bakr, Hamza and Umar, and the other
under pagan Abu Lahab, another uncle of the prophet, the latter and his supporters
having intensified their oppression and persecution of Muslims. Consequently, a
group of about seventy Muslims again went back to Abyssinia, where they lived
until the emigration (Hijrah) of the holy prophet and his companions to Yathrib
(Medinah) later. The Makkan Qureish had even blockaded the houses of the local
Muslims altogether, some of whom had even to die of it. Later, however, a better
sense of clanism prevailed due to the intervention of some wise pagans and the
blockade was finally removed. It was soon after this incident that lady Khadeejah,
the prophet's wife, and his protector uncle Abu Thalib passed away. The hostility
against the prophet and Muslims increased after the demise of lady Khadeejah and
Abu Thalib, both of whom were quite influential The Qureish even had resorted to
throwing rubbish and filth on the prophet during his prayers. When the oppression
became unbearable, the prophet undertook a secret trip to the neighbouring city of
Taif, where the tribes not only rejected him but also stoned him severely, bleeding
him. On hearing this news, the Qureish became trigger happy and increased their
oppression of the prophet and the companions with more vigour. It was during this
period that Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be on him) became engaged
to Ayishah, the eight-year-old daughter of Abu Bakr, but the marriage was held in
abeyance until the girl attained her maturity of twelve years. However, for the sake
of a companion and solace during those days of intense trial, he married lady
Sowdah, a widow of one of his companions who on his return from Abyssinia had
died.
Almost the same time, about 621 C.E., had taken place the epochmaking,
great "Al-Mi'raj" or "Isra'a" (Ascension) of the holy prophet, a journey of a part of
the night to reinforce his spiritualism and knowledge of the unseen about which the
Lord of the universe alone knows. The journey from the sacred mosque at Makkah
(the Ka'abah) to the sacred mosque in Jerusalem {Masjidul Aqsaa) with a vision of
the glory of Allah, the celestial beings, the beauty and splendour of the paradise
promised to the faithful and meetings with the souls of the earlier prophets is
unique in that the very belief in this narrative of the "Truthful" messenger of Allah
provides the touchstone of the belief of the faithful. Without going into any
discussion as to whether it was a vision, spiritual ascension or bodily ascension,
which
anyway
does
not
131
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
provide any useful analysis on this only one unique phenomenon that neither
happened to anyone before nor will happen to anyone in the future, it may only be
said that this was one of the greatest of miracles on which the faith and belief of
Muslims in the greatness of the Lord of the universe, the greatness of the "Crown
of Prophets" and the certified honesty of this great prophet of Islam rest quite a
lot. It was an incident that could not even be comprehended, by the pagans of
Makkah, although they had blind faith in the powers of the innumerable stone
statues who could not see, hear, feel or even help themselves and were enshrined
in not only the holy Ka'abah but everywhere to help the devotees in all
eventualities! They were devoid of comprehension beyond a camel ride through
the barren desert from south of Arabia to the Syrian capital in the north, or a
sailing voyage across the Red Sea lasting for weeks and months with no
forecastable results. However, for the man of science of today, the very term
"Buraq" evolved from "Burq," meaning lightning, electricity or even electronics
and so on, which is used to denote the conveyance used by the angel of Allah to
carry the holy prophet from Makkah to Jerusalem by air and the unknown method
represented by a glittering ladder, so to say, which was the medium for ascending
him to the sanctum sanctorum through the various stages of the heaven in a few
hours during the silent part of the night and the fantastically long return trip
should not pose any problem as far as understanding the technique is concemed.
Even a young chlld of today does not get flabbergasted when the newsflash about a
space probe directed toward space or the skylab flight lasting from a few days to
several years in space and back is given on the radio, television or news media.
Decades have lapsed after nuclear submarines and ships have been put into the sea
without being refuelled at all. Several millions of kilometers are involved in each
of these journeys, quite a number of them, including returns being controlled by
stations on the earth ! The scientist of today is well aware of the law of
interchangeability of material mass and energy. From the viewpoint of science
through the process of conversion of matter into energy, it should be possible to
attain the velocity of light, but how to attain it is the only problem. If man could
place space probes in orbit and also retrieve them at will, will it be difficult for the
Lord of the universe to perform such a miracle as the prophet's ascension in body?
If light, which is the threshold of the theory of relativity as far as mankind is
concemed, may travel over a billion kilometers in an hour and nearly nine billion
kilometers in eight hours, can anyone even comprehend how far another super
energy at super velocity at the control of the Lord of the universe much, much
above
the
human
132
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
133
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
warah, leaving a philosophy and way of life that are a standard and ideal for
developed mankind to follow until the last day of the human species on this earth.
Muhammad, the Prophet (Blessings of Allah and peace be on him), being the
last of prophets to appear before mankind on this earth has demonstrated a
complete model life for mankind as a boy, youth, husband, father, teacher, ruler,
and a prophet, all in one, being himself nothing exceptional from any other human
being except his special status of prophethood. He stressed the importance of good
thoughts, words and deeds in all walks of life, always becoming a model and
example for others to follow easily.
134
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
135
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
accordance with the scientific facts of this century. This would be inconceivable if
the Quraan were the work of a single man or were copied from earlier scriptures,
particularly the Bible.
As per the consensus of the disciples, based on the discourse of the holy
prophet Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be on him), himself being
illiterate, he was unable to read the revelation from Allah when it was first
conveyed to him by the archangel Jibreel. It contained the famous Quraanic verses
1 to 5 of chapter 96, "Read in the name of your Lord who created, created the man
from a clot of congealed blood; Read and thy Lord is most bountiful who taught
the use of the pen, taught man what he knew not." It is said that when the prophet
replied to the angel that he could not read and write, the latter embraced him,
pressing him tightly, and the resulting miracle was that he could read. Subsequent
revelations of the magnificent Quraan in parts large and small, in all 6,666 verses
and comprising 323,760 words, all occurred during his vision of the angel whom
no one other than himself saw, the revelations being instructions given from time
to time according to the need of the particular occasions during the entire prophetic
period of about twenty-three years. During the first thirteen years of this period,
spent in Makkah, the revelations concentrated on proclamations, first in secret and
later in public against both "Negation of Allah (Kufr)" and "Assigning of partners
to Allah (Shirk) as -well as strengthening the belief and concept of "Unity of
Allah (Tawheed)." Open enmity of Makkans, which culminated in oppression of
the believers and their social boycott, forced the prophet and his followers to
migrate (hijrah) to Madinah where the locals received the prophet and his
followers with open arms. Here the Muslims, under the able leadership of the
prophet, established an Islamic society and later the foundations of the model
Islamic state. The revelations during the Madinah period contained instructions on
war and peace, captives, bounty of the war, treaties and agreements,administration
of justice, moral uplift of society, economic and social devalopment, rights of the
rulers and the ruled, men and women, parents and children, husband and wife,
friends as well as neighbours and relations, citizens and foreigners, as well as
orders regarding prayers, fasting, Hajj and Zakaat. Completing the revelations in
the twenty-third year of the prophethood was the verse on the "Completion of the
revelation and perfection of Islam." As is seen from the Quraan, the various
religious orders were given in steps; the Salat (prayer) having been first ordained
during nights only in the first year of the Makkan period because it was not safe to
offer prayers during daytime among enemies who used to ridicule, try to hamstring
and
molest
Muslims,
including
136
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
the prophet, during prayers. Later, the morning and the evening prayers were
enjoined, completing instructions on offering of the five compulsory prayers after
the Mi'raj (Ascension) which, however, was still being offered secretly in valleys
until the conversion of the great Omar Bin Khattab, who became the second caliph
later, when offering of prayers in public was commenced. Fasting, saying the
prayer call (Adhan) and payment of Zakaat too were started during the Medinah
period. Turning to Makkah to face Ka'abah (the house of Allah built originally by
the prophet Abraham peace be on him) for the daily prayers instead of to
Jerusalem was also instructed in Madinah. All these acts were as a result of
Quraanic revelations' of Allah to the holy prophet delivered from time to time by
Jibreel, the archangel.
Not only were the revelations of the Quraan memorised by several of the
followers of the holy prophet as soon as each portion was revealed, but they were
also recorded in writing on leather, bones, stones and even on the chests of some of
the followers, after being read over to the prophet to prevent mistakes in order that
nothing of the original was omitted, nor lost later. Even sequence and the serial of
each verse and chapter of the entire revelation had been indicated by the holy
prophet and, thus, the Quraan in its natural order had been available not only in
memorised form but also in recorded documentary form with several disciples of
the prophet. However, when during the caliphate of Abubakr, the first caliph, he
found several disciples who had memorised the Quraan (Haffaz) had been
martyred in the wars, he decided to get more authentic copies of the Quraan
prepared and distributed to all cities of the state. Later, during the time of the
second Caliph Omar, as reported by Ibne-Hisham, as many copies as 100,000 in
"'Khattal-Amiri" (Amiri script) were available in various parts of the Islamic state.
During the time of the third caliph, Othman, a board of twelve famous disciples of
the holy prophet was commissioned to prepare the Quraan according to the
"'Quresh'' accent and send it to Makkah, Madinah, Basra, Kufa, Yemen, Syria and
Bahrain. During the reign of the fourth caliph, Ali, Abul Aswad, a trusted disciple,
put the phonetic marks to the Quraan text in order to make it readable correctly
even by nonArab Muslims and to maintain uniformly correct reading of the verses
(Qir'at). The Quraan also has remained a current literature of freshness throughout
the ages until this day through its recitation by Qaariyoon and Haffaz during
offering of daily prayers and particularly during the optional Tarawih prayers of
the fasting month of Ramadhan when the entire Quraan is recited several times
during the month. During every era of the past 1400 years after the revelation of
the
Quraan,
there
existed
and
exist
even
today
hundreds
137
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
of thousands of such Haffaz who have memorised the whole of the Quraan and
reproduced it from memory daily. Thus, the genuineness and exactness of the
Quraan has been kept alive over the years without even its punctuation and
phonetics altering at all. There is no other religious scripture or Book revealed by
Allah, including the Torah or Injeel, that can claim such acute authenticity,
nonpollution and correctness. Further, the Qir'at competition, wherein Qaariyoon
from all over the Muslim world take part in recitation of the Quraan correctly, has
also continued to exist all over the past centuries as it does today. This is in fact
what has been guaranteed by Allah in the Quraan, "Surely, We have revealed it
(Quraan) and surely, We are its Guardian" (15:9).
Allah Himself declares in the Quraan: Quraan is truth (2:91), clear (24:46),
manifest (2:99,12:1), plain (41:3), light (42:52; 64:8), wisdom (17:39; 10:1; 81:2;
36:8;-15:1), guidance (27:2; 45:20; 31:3), full of blessings (6:156). It verifies and
confirms previous books of God (2:41, 89,91, 97; 3:3; 4:47; 5:48; 35:31; 46:30);
Bani Israel knew it as it was mentioned in their Holy Books (26:196); It makes no
discrimination between the prophets of Allah (2:136, 285; 4:152);the purpose of
this Book is to bring forth men from darkness into light (14:1, 52); It is a message
for the people that they may know that He iS One Allah and that men of
understanding may mind(14:52; 17:41).
The Quraan has repeatedly challenged the highly literate critics as well as
enemies of the "Unlettered Prophet of Islam" and the unbelievers to produce, by
themselves, ten Suras (Chapters), or one Sura or even a recital like it jointly with
their witnesses and helpers, if they believed that the Quraan was not a miracle of
Allah, that it was a forgery and that it was a fabrication, or it was never correct at
all (2:23; 10:38; 11:13; 52:88,34). Therefore, Allah rightly confirms also in the
Quraan that nobody could produce its like even if all men and Jinn were to help
each other (17:88). This challenge which remained uncontested during the lifetime
of the holy prophet has also remained so throughout the past 1,400 years or more
as it will continue to remain so for all time. Further, the recent computer-aided
mathematical research has revealed that the holy Quraan, the infallible words of
Allah, has been guarded from tampering and corruption by means of a wonderful
mathematical interlocking system by which there is an almost impossible--one in
six hundred and twenty-six septillions (626 x 1024)--chance of producing a similar
total document by any creation from the point of numerical locking alone!
The Quraan reveals that in truth it is the Book confirming what went before it
as Allah's guidance to the human beings from time to time sucb as 'the Torah or the
Law
of
Moses
(peace
be
on
him),
the
138
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Zaboor or the Psalms of David (peace be on him), the Injeel or the Gospel of Jesua
Christ (peace be on him) and the books as well as revelations sent to many other
prophets before Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be on him) (3:3); that
Allah sent inspiration to Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be on him) as
he had sent it to Noah and other messengers of Allah after him such as Ibrahim
(Abraham), Ismail, Ishaq (Isaac), Yacoob (Jacob), and the Tribes, Isa (Jesus),
Ayoub (Job), Haroon (Aaron), Sulaiman (Solomon), Dawood (David) and Moosa
(Moses) (peace be on them) from time to time ( 4: 163). It also states that divine
Book was revealed to Ibrahim (87:19). However, the specific Books of past
prophets mentioned by name in the Quraan are the Torah of Moosa, Zaboor
(Psalms) of Dawood, Injeel (Gospels) of Isa and Quraan of Muhammad (peace be
on them). Thus, while confirming and testifying the earlier step by step divine
guidances through Books and criteria between right and wrong that were revealed
by Allah to the various prophets, the Quraan makes it compulsory for all Muslims
to have faith in them (2:4, 136, 285; 3:3, 84; 5:49-51; 6:92-93) because all
messengers of Allah were bearers of good news and warnings (4:163; 6:85-87;
19:53; 21:86). It also says, 'Peace be to Noah, Ibrahim, Moosa and Haroon,Elias
and all prophets, (37:79, 120, 130, 181) and declares that Ibrahim, lshaq, Yacoob,
Noah, Dawood, Sulaiman, Ayoob, Yousuf, Moosa, Haroon, Zakariya, Yahya, Isa,
Ilyas, Ismail, AI-Yasa'a, Younus, Loot (peace be on them) were all amongst the
benefactors, righteous and exalted ones who were given the Book, authority and
prophethood (6:84-87j 6:89). Thus, the stand of the Quraan is that all the prophets
of Allah, their divine Books and revelations all proclaimed and preached the same
Islam that was highlighted by Muhammad (peace be on him) and the Quraan.
However, as shown under the chapters of Christianity and Judaism, as the earlier
revelations and books of Allah had become either polluted, lost or become
insufficient to cover the total life pattern of the fully developed human beings of
the enlightened modern age, the Quraan was revealed as the final revelation for the
believers as the final book containing previous revelations and as the total and final
guide for the human beings forever. This is the exact positions of the Quraan and
the mission of the last of the prophets.
139
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
of Allah and peace be on him) as well as emulating his great way of life, especially
because all his directives and advice as well as his way of life had revelational
background and, in many instances they had explained in detail the contents and
meaning of the many verses of the glorious Quraan which generally only refer to
quite a few essential matters. Thus, for example, about the compulsory five time
prayers and how they should be offered, while the Quraan only gives the
fundamental idea, the minutest details had been demonstrated by the holy prophet
during his prophetic period as a continuous explanation. So much so, unless the
prophet's way of life is taken as an essential supplement, the way of offering of
daily prayers cannot be detailed. On most of the aspects of Islamic philosophy,
thoughts, beliefs, faith, law and conduct, thus, the traditions of the holy prophet,
comprised of sayings as well as actions, occupy an integral relationship with the
holy Quraan.
Also, for the clarifications of any minor differences, the Muslims refer to the
various actions and ways adopted by the first four caliphs, Abubakr, Omar,
Othman and Ali, who are considered as the authorities on Islamic jurisprudence,
administration, Shariah and the social welfare state, because these four had the
closest association with the holy prophet, Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and
peace be on him)and unrestricted approach to him during his lifetime. As far as the
traditions (hadeeth) of the holy prophet are concerned there are thousands of them
covering almost all aspects of human thought and life to guide Muslims to the right
course of Allah within the framework of the glorious Quraan. Several great
Muslim scholars, well versed in religious jurisprudence, have done lifelong
research to sift the most authentic traditions, tracing them back to either his honest
wives or the most trusted disciples of the holy prophet or both. Having become
fully satisfied with their undisputed reliability as a result of corroboration by more
than one source they have provided compilations of these "'correct and strong
traditions," which are not only referred to as authority and also recited by the
Muslims but even committed to memory just as is the holy Quraan. The proven
traditions had been thus compiled by six different scholars of the ninth century
C.E.-Bukhari, Muslim, Abu Dawood, Tirmidhi, Nasai and Ibn Maaja-which are
the accepted references in the field.
Two other dynamic institutions that existed during the second century Hijri
(eighth century C.E.) were Ijma' and Ijtihaad.
In order to overcome individual and regional differences of opinion that could
have occurred later, the legal theory and practice of Islamic Shariah (path) were
standardised
by
the
consensus
of
eminent
Ulemas
140
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
The Islamic faith is based on the firm belief that Allah, being the Sole and
Only One supreme Planner, Designer, Creator, Sustainer and Disposer of the entire
universe and everything in it and beyond, He alone is worthy of devotion, worship
and seeking spiritual help; that Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be on
him) was the last prophet of Islam in the chain of many similar prophets who
preceded him and that the last prophet was strengthened by Allah with guidance
through revelations including the holy Quraan through the archangel Jibreel
(Gabriel) throughout the former's twenty-three year prophetic mission. Muslims
have been repeatedly warned, like the children of Israel, against worshipping idols,
denying Allah in any physical or other form, attributing any temporal characteristic
such as passion, or family, and attributing any share of His powers to any kind of
creation
141
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
whatsoever. In short, like the Jews, Muslims have also been directed by Allah to be
strict monotheists with belief in Him alone.
The Quraan has made clear
that Islam, "The Religion Before Allah,'' had been revealed to human
beings from the earliest of times when man had commenced his life on
earth, in a step by step process, through His prophets of Allah through the
ages had been essentially : to be with holy revelations, miracles and books
in due measure as was needed for guiding people of each respective age;
that the same Islam that was preached by all the earlier prophets, some of
whom are named, and many who are not named, in the Torah and Quraan,
who were sent to preach over specific communities and nations in order
that none was deprived of guidance, was also preached in its complete and
perfect form by the last of prophets, Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and
peace be on him), who was reinforced with divine relevations as well as the
final book of Allahs criterion and guidance, the Quraan;
that the essence of lslam as preached and followed by the various prophets
of Allah through the ages had been essentially; to believe in the Only One
Allah who is the Sole Planner, Designer, Creator,Sustainer and Disposer of
the universe; to obey Him alone and to rely on His sole guidance and
protection; not to worship any other than Him; not to attribute any partner
whomsoever to the sole power, authority and.majesty of Allah; and to be
just and true;
that the revelatory process and assignment of prophets came to a close with
the advent of prophet Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be on
him) as the last of the prophets and the revelation of the Quraan as the final
criterion and guide for all time and perfecting as well as completing the
religion of lslam through this last prophet and the Quraan; and
that the followers of this perfected religion of Islam have been made "'the
best of people evolved for the mankind, enjoining what is right, forbidding
what is wrong and believing in Allah."
ii.
The Quraan states that the universe consisting of "seven firmaments and the
earth" was created in six days (7:54) of which four were for the earth and two for
the firmaments evolved from smoke" (41:10,11), a day in the reckoning of Allah
being thousands of human years (70:4), the earth having been prepared for the
habitation
of
man
142
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
from an unknown time when the latter's creation in due time had been
contemplated by Allah. Further, in the shapes of guiding hints to the human beings
in this regard, the Quraan also states: "Do not the unbelievers see that the heavens
and the earth were joined together (as one unit of creation) before We cloved them
asunder? We made from water every living thing: will they not then believe? And
We have set on the earth mountains standing firm lest it should shake with them
(21:30,31).
143
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
realising his own fault of rebellion against Allah, repenting and seeking His pardon
and grace, Iblis had chosen to seek permission of Allah to let him have respite as
well as power to seek revenge on Adam and his progeny until the "last day"
(15:36}, as he had the idea that his own fall was brought about because of the
creation of Adam and not, alas, due to his own pride, haughtiness, disobedienee
and rebellion against Allah! This request was granted with the warning that he and
those who followed his wrong and devilish ways would certainly be subjected to
eternal punishment in the "Hell," a dangerous abode of burning fire (7:14-18).
Thus while Adam and Eve had been passing their temporary period of dwelling in
Paradise, lblis, having vowed to take revenge on them at the first possible instance,
prompted them to eat of the forbidden tree, swearing to them that Allah had
restrained them from approaching the tree because, in such an event, they should
become angels or such beings as would live forever" (7:20) .Adam and Hawwah,
having succumbed to the temptation of lblis, ate of the tree in contravention of the
earlier explicit command of Allah and as an immediate result, "having their shame
become manifest to them" (7:22), both regretted and repented their disobedience to
Allah, which was accepted and pardoned.However,Paradise was no longer fit to be
their abode in the overall plan of Allah. Along with Iblis, both Adam and Hawwah
were thus sent out of Paradise to live on earth until the "Iast day" multiplying their
respective progeny as enemies of each other. Allah in His kindness, however,
promised to Adam that his progeny would be blessed with divine guidance from
time to time through selected prophets and apostles among themselves, so that by
leading a clean and devoted life shown by them, eschewing the evil promptings
and ways of lblis and his henchmen, the eternal but lost paradise could be regained
by the human beings (2:36-39; 7:23-25).
144
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
(peace be on him) and the Quraan revealed to Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and
peace be on them) (Al-Quraan 4:163-165; 5:21; 6:84-90; 23:23-50; 57:26--27).
That these prophets and apostles were men of supreme character, nominated and
designated as such by Allah to guide certain people, tribes and communities of
each respective age, duly reinforced with Allah's revelations and divine books that
contained the laws and guidelines necesaary for leading a balanced spiritual and
social life fit for the emancipation of the human beings and aimed at the prime
objective of regaining the lost eternal paradise; that each of these prophets
preached the same religion of Islam fit for their own times with emphasis on fair
play, justice, and belief of as well as devotion to the only One Allah who is the
Sole Planner, Designer, Creator, Sustainer and Disposer of the entire universe and
everything in it (42:13); that all these prophets had been assigned to their
respective ages with limited jurisdictions to lead and guide only a section of people
except the last prophet and messenger, Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace
be on him), who alone had been assigned by Allah as the final prophet to
propagate the completed form of Islam with the finally revealed divine book, AlQuraan, which is the ''words of Allah" and guaranteed from any tampering until the
"last day' 'as well as revelations with self-sufficient codes to-serve as the ultimate
guide for the spiritual emancipation of the fully developed human beings as a
whole by leading a balanced social life in the world until the "last day" (2:87 ;
4:82; 5:92; 6:19,92; 9:6; 15:9; 27:6; 45:2; 56:77,78)these are among the
cornerstones of Islamic faith and belief.
The position of prophets in Islam, as testified in the Quraan, is that all
messengers of God were bearers of good news and warnings (57:26; 11:25).
Adam, Noah, and descendants of Ibrahim and Imran were chosen by God (3:32).
Ibrahim was made a leader of men, selected in this world and righteous in the next
and a model of virtue, truthful and a prophet (2:124,130; 16:129). Ismail was
truthful in promise and a prophet (19:54). Moosa was one purified and a prophet
(19:66). It declares that Ibrahim, Ishaq, Yacob, Noah, Dawood, Sulaiman, Ayub,
Yusuf, Moosa, Haroon, Zakariya, Yahya, lsa, Elias, Ismail, AI Yasaa, Younus, and
Looth were all among the benefactors, righteous and exalted ones (6:84----87) and
that they were given the Book, authority and prophethood. (6:89).
Thus, Muslims must believe in the three books-The Zaboor (Psalms), The
Torah (Old Testament) and The Injeel (the Gospels)-that were revealed by Allah to
the respective apostles and prophets Dawood (David), Moosa (Moses) and Isa
(Jesus) Peace be on them),prior to the advent of Al-Quraan, which was revealed as
the
final
guide
145
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
to the last and final of the prophets, Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be
on him) (3:3; 4:136). Further, Muslims do not differentiate between one prophet
and another except in that the religion that was preached by the earlier prophets on
the basis of revelations sent to them by Allah, though sufficient for their respective
generatjons and peoples, was not in the completed and final form preached by the
last of prophets, Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be on him), who was
sent as the seal of prophets" reinforced by revelations and the final divine book
of guidance, Al-Quraan, perfecting and completing Islam for the fully developed
mankind (4:150,152).. It is therefore that the Quraan has permitted Muslims to eat
of the clean foods and to marry the women of Jews and Christians, who have been
designated as ''the people of the book", and because they also believe basically in
the only One God as required in their divine scriptures.
v.
146
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
147
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
as perpetual hatred, and the cause of fights between even relatives and friends.
However, in exceptional cases where it becomes necessary either due to fear of
committing prostitution or adultery or injustice to the orphans (and never for lust
alone), permission has been given as a very special case to marry up to four wives,
only when one may remain reasonably just to allof them (4:3). Nevertheless,
practice of patience or self-restraint in these matters is recommended (4:25).
Divorce is made legal for both men and women on questions of incompatibility
and proven immorality, but reunion between the divorced husband and wife is
permitted after not more than two divorces. However, after the third divorce, the
same couple may not remarry unless the divorced woman marries a second
husband and is also divorced by him naturally (2:229,230). The object of providing
two chances for reconciliation with a waiting period between the estranged couple
through the efforts of themselves, social elders and relatives is in order to avoid, as
far as possible, a total and final break of the sacred marriage ties, endangering the
future welfare of themselves, and the children in particular, if any. The divorced
men and women may, however, remarry any others freely as they choose, after
expiration of the ordained waiting period (2:232). On the occasion of wedding, the
husband must pay a suitable present to the wife according to his status and ability
before he lays his hands on her, and this present may not be taken back at the time
of divorce (4:4,19; 20, 21).
In the field of work, Islam expects everyone not only to perform his duty with
objectivity, sincerity, patience and as best one can leaving the result to flower as
destined by Allah, but also not to indulge in dishonesty nor begging. Belief of a
Muslim in "destiny" is often ridiculed by nonMuslims. In fact, this is the only
course left to man when we consider that the net result of any action cannot
confine strictly only to the immediate physical, chemical and converted reactions
in time but, in abstract terms, to the total reaction in terms of the effects of the
action in all its total aspects inciuding the vast indeterminable consequences that
are attributable to the purpose, intent and objective in mind as well as later
harmonic-like" aftereffects, in future time and space all put together. All must be
considered in full depth. Therefore, with what intention, to what perfection and
with what all-known and hidden purposes in mind each different action of a human
being is performed and what resultant final effects accrue thereto in what space
and time are known only to Allah, who is the only "all-knowing planner, designer,
creator, sustainer and disposer of all matter and energy created in the universe."
Rightly, the Quraan states; "And of surety, your Lord (Allah) will pay back to all
(in
full
recompense)
of
148
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
their deeds: for He knoweth well all that ye do" (11:11). Nevertheless, the Quraan
also states; "Allah does not change the state of a people unless they themselves
have a will to change it" (13:11) and that Allah is absolutely just and kind to all
His creatures, letting His laws of nature act evenly on all, but with advantage to the
raithful who seek good ways, and normally on the unfaithful. Finally, it is assured
in the Quraan that "Allah does not let the good deeds of any person go without
reward" (2:62). Allah is so kind as to let even the vicious have respite until the
"last day" (14:142) unless almost all of a people continue to create mischief or
practice repression and oppression, in which event He checks one section of the
people with another for the good of the human beings (22:40). As in the case of the
peoples of prophets Noah, Hud, Shuaib and Salih, versus persons like Firaon
(Pharoah), Haman and Qaroon(Korah)-mentioned in the Quraan-Allah destroyed
an entire bad people who repeatedly erred knowingly, saving the good among
them, to serve as a lesson for posterity. Assures the Quraan; "Nor will thy Lord
(Allah) be the one to destroy communities for a single wrongdoing, if its members
were likely to mend" (11:117). Through these and other advices as well as
directives almost every problem confronting the society of the developed human
beings that has something to do with their spiritual emancipation directly or
indirectly has been solved by the Quraan and the prophet's teachings in just manner
for all times.
149
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
and produce such as agriculture, crops, mined wealth and others, varies from two
and a half to twenty per cent according to each kind. For the cattle it is assessed in
the form of numbers. This is a means for preventing poverty on the one hand and
accumulation of much fabulous wealth on the other among the various sections of
lslamic society, as well as for meeting the day to day, expenses of the Islamic state.
Naturally, neither the masses suffering from acute poverty nor millionaires with
excessive and hoarded cash stock may thus develop in a society that rightly
follows the Quraanic instruction. In trade, making excessive profit on essential
items of necessity is forbidden. Even hoarding of food grains and items of basic
essential goods required for the masses, either by creating shortage or with the
intention of selling them later at higher profit is also forbidden. All contracts and
agreements have to be honoured scrupulously.
While all legitimate kinds of trade devoid of excessive profitmaking is
permitted, lending money on interest has been totally prohibited in Islam. This
again may be found as a means for preventing the wealthy class from enjoying a
steady income without getting exposed to any kind of risk that is unnatural and
from keeping their valuable time idle or engaged in undesirable pursuits that often
persons with big wealth and income are often tempted to indulge in. However,
partnership investment, which exposes itself to both profit and loss alike, is
encouraged. This, again, keeps the partners engaged in fruitful business activities-a
must for economic and social progress. In all kinds of business, whether trade,
agriculture, industry or any other activity where employer-employee relationship
occurs, a fair and reasonable wage to the worker on the one hand and a similarly
just return to the investor or employer on the other, in consideration of all aspects
of the business whereby both-sections are benefitted on the basis of brotherly
feelings and cooperation avoiding confrontation of any kind is ordained. Thus the
Islamic economic system is a natural one in which even the thought of class war or
exploitation between the bourgeoise and the proletariat is overcome, being
unnecessary. What is left over after payment of Zakaat on produces, assets and
reserves on the one hand and government taxes on the other is one's own private
property, sacred and pure, to which no one has any claim; even the govemment.
Islam, rightly having taken into account the most important nature of the human
being that incentive is needed for work, has therefore also granted this right of
owning clean wealth badly needed for acquiring the means for leading a
comfortable life. However, no Muslim who is aware of the directives af the Quraan
can have peace of mind unless he also spends freely in sadaqah (charity) out of his
wealth
in
order
to
150
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
ameliorate the condition of the less affluent of the neigbours-orphans, widows, the
old and those who groan under the burden of debt. This, although a voluntary
institution, is generally and devoutly practiced by not only most of the wealthy and
middle-class people among Muslims but also even by the less affluent section of
the brotherhood, mostly in secret, as the Quraan and the holy prophet have
commended those charities that "are given away by the right hand without the left
hand even knowing about it."
The business of the state on the economic front is to be confined to
administration of the state affairs, of welfare schemes and of the religious common
trust properties such as mosques, orphanages, schools, hospitals, poor homes and
the like, apart from ensuring that no one in the state goes hungry and destitute on
account of an inability to earn either due to health hazards or lack of work. The
ownership of private property by confiscation as in a communist state is not the
duty of the government because the duty of the state is not to act as a capitalist,
owning the property that people must possess. As far as Islamic outlook is
concerned, if any property becomes an impediment to the state, in the act of
discharging its most important duty of encouraging virtues and discouraging
evil," the state has the right of punishing the owner of the concerned property
according to Islamic Shariah Laws. Further, if the state finds that any particular
wealth has been amassed by illegal means, the state machinery has the means to
recover its dues from the owner as well as to ensure that the portion of the wealth
belonging to others is also returned to the rightful owners without resorting to
undue harassment and witch-hunting. Such actions may be instituted only after due
evidence according to Islamic law is obtained in favour or against as the case may
be. Exparte decisions without proving any charge against the citizen is also
forbidden.
viii. Crime and Punishment
A Muslim is supposed to be the model for others to follow, as is testified by
the Quraan (3:110), if the course chalked out by it and the teachings of the holy
prophet Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be upon him) are followed.
However, the human being, as its nature is, is acutely selfish as well as pleasureseeking and is under the bad influence of Shaitan, who tries his best to deflect
every person from the right course in accordance with his vow that he had made in
Paradise to seek revenge on Adam and his progeny until the last day and the
respite that was given to him by Allah at the time of his
151
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
expulsion from there. Therefore, a Muslim too may lose his guard at times and
commit certain crimes that Allah has directed him to refrain from. Further, in any
society there can be bad elements who may try to disturb the peace by indulging in
crimes forbidden under the Shariah of Islam. Morally, while every person will
have to answer to Allah on the judgment day for all the actions committed by
oneself, for the reason that the relevant bad acts committed by the individuals may
have far-reaching adverse effects on the society, due worldy punishments also
have been prescribed in the Quraan to be meted out to the offenders involved in
certain specific crimes. For the reason that such punishments have been prescribed
by Allah Himself, who knows all His creations thoroughly, the state authorities
entrusted with carrying out the relevant punishments, having no discretion in the
matter, have also been directed by the Quraan to administer such punishments
without showing any sympathy so as to serve as deterrents for others. Like the
laws of the Torah, these are on the principle of an eye for an eye, tooth for a
tooth and life for a life," except for crimes like drinking in public, theft and
adultery, for which respectively, stripes, cutting of the hand and stripes or stoning
have been prescribed.
ix. Status of Women in Islam
This is a question generally commented upon adversely by nonMusJims and
cruelly, too, without appreciating its Islamic implications. That woman has been
created as a partner for man mainly with the sex and reproductive process in view,
as with any other animal, is accepted by all. Man, being the most refined of the
animal species, has also to act as such. Complete freedom to associate in sex has
akeady created chaos in the society of today. That the relationship between man
and woman has to be regulated is an essential necessity of the civilized society. A
socially acceptable union termed "marriage" is thus accepted by all religions and
societies in the world because without this institution, the family, the society all go
into chaos. If any man is permitted to have sex with any woman and vice versa, the
organised norms of social life must crumble, leaving an atmosphere of intense
jealousy, fighting and even elass wars. Islam has reeognised the fundamental need
to put the social order as a whole on a correct footing where jealousy, fighting and
class wars may be abolished altogether. As has been done in the case of economy
and wealth, Islam has also placed the relationship between man and woman on a
realistic footing in view of the emotional qualities of the human being. As jealousy
breeds hatred and war, and one of the causes of jealousy is sexual desire, the most
impor-
152
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
tant cause that produces sexual desire being free mixing of sexes without
restrictions, has been forbidden in Islam. The Islamic law has specified the
categories of woman who cannot be taken as a wife, such as mother, sisters,
daughters, daughters of sisters and brothers, mothers-in-law, two sisters
simultaneously, wives of sons and so on mostly being near blood relations and
those who, by marital relations, have become so in status. Free mixing of men and
women who do not fall in this group is discouraged in the interest of a clean
society. This is so because, by and large, men and women are attracted to each
other due to sexual desire. It is only due to this reason that man, generally, likes the
company of women and vice versa. Socially, morality needs that this be
discouraged. Marriage being a license to have sex beween man and woman with
the sacred objective of creating progeny, it must be considered as a great moral
institution of any society where the law of acute possession must prevail.
Therefore, the necessity of having freedom for any man to have close association
with any woman other than the blood relations or own wife should not arise. If
such an unrestricted freedom is available, familiarity usually develops into love
followed by sex, which is dangerous for an organised society because apart from
the development of jealousy and hatred even between blood relations, the question
of genetics may come into dispute. If one woman has sex with more than one man,
even the woman may not always be able to identify the father of the child and this
failure may dismantle the very organisation of the family and society. Therefore,
prohibition in Islam on free mixing of men and women in general and women not
being permitted to marry more than one man at the same time, unlike men, may be
justly explained.
The horrible degradation of moral values as far as sex is concerned in Western
countries in general and the social problems this has created for most nations in
particular need not be repeated here, as the world has become aware of this acute
problem with no solution at this stage except adopting the social norms in this
regard as provided by Islam. At the same time, Islam has granted a certain amount
of freedom and respect to women with full realisation of the natural status of
women, which they themselves generally accept asthe "weaker sex." In the
Western as well as Eastern countries, while separate state laws had to be evolved
to provide equality to women with men in specific fields, Islam has however
granted this privilege to them 1400 years ago when even women were not so
enlightened as to even appreciate that they needed such a status. The Quraan
declares: "Men are the protectors of women" (4:34). This along with the explicit
Quraanic instructionos that not only the wife must be elevated to the economic
status
of
the
husband
153
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
before he lays his hands on her, but that such dowry (Mahr) remains the property
of the wife not to be taken back even in the event of a divorce; that the woman has
the right to own wealth and properties of her own as well as to inherit property of
deceased relatives ; that the wife must be treated with kindness and understanding
and that the woman has also the right of divorce in certain cases, have all made the
position, social as well as economic, of a woman secure in lslam, which right no
other religion has given to her. Naturally, such rights and protection oblige her also
to become subordinate to man in some respects that have great moral and social
bearings. Complete equality is a mirage only when we realise that even nature has
created the woman with such terrible inequality against her as conception,
maternity and the rearing of children, pangs that have to be borne with patience
and fortitude by the woman only and never by the man.
An important aspect of lslamic sexual morality is that it recognises the nature
of man as generally being biologically superior to woman, not only in thinking, but
in the power of taking decisions, actions and responsibilitcy. Man seldom wavers,
whereas it is a trait usual with woman. Further, the strength of a man, except in
very rare cases, is much superior to that of a woman.Sexually too, man expresses
his passion much more vividly than women. Even in the area of prostitution, which
is a social evil, the woman serves as a means of satisfying the man's passions and
very seldom vice versa. A woman normally keeps her excessive passions dormant,
if there be any, whereas man generally does not do so. Thus, if a reasonably large
number of men biologically need more sex, rather than permitting the antisocial
and illegal ways of prostitution and adultery, Islam has given man the license to
marrying more than one wife provided he can afford it, keeping all the wives
reasonably alike socially and economically as well. In fact, during a period of war
when either woman prisoners are captured in large numbers or orphan girls are left
behind due to deaths or when the ratio of women to men in a society goes up, such
an exceptional provision becomes a blessing. The alternative or allowing those
women to go into prostitution or adultery, as has legally or illegally existed in
many parts of the world, has remained a social problem for which no solution has
yet been forthcoming except through provisions like those that exist in Islam. Even
this license has been restricted so as not to be used loosely by limiting the
maxjmum number permissible at any time to no more than four, so that the
progeny of wedlock may live as honourable citizens enjoying respect and
hereditary legal rights and not as despised bastards in shame, as is the case now in
modem world societies.
154
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
x.
Aqeedah 301
On the social front, Islam gives great importance to the universal brotherhood
firstly by declaring that 'Muslims are but a single brotherhood" (49:10), and as the
prophet said "A Muslim is forbidden from eating while his neighbor is starving."
Great stress is placed on caring for the comforts and inconveniences of others as
well as avoiding undue annoyance to others. Cleanliness and straightforwardness
in every dealing, remaining steadfast on keeping words, agreements, promises and
refraining from committing social crimes such as cheating, uttering lies or
falsehoods, concealing evidence, practicing deception, thefts and so on are
enjoined on Muslims. While guarding one's own chastity, undue exhibition of
one's own personal beauty, which may attract an unconcerned person and even
engagement in unnecessary talks with strangers, have been prohibited for women,
and men have been warned not to stare at or remain in the company of
unconnected women, alone, for an undue time for any reason whatsoever. While
the women are not only permitted but also encouraged to shoulder their
responsibilities towards the society, segregation between the sexes is
recommended. These are to discourage the man and woman from becoming too
familiar with or appreciative of each other,which may result in the development of
passion or sexual desire between them. Far from being a directive based on
suspicion against men and women, this is with the motive of preventing any
possible corruption in society. No sensible and understanding person can deny the
fact that this is a necessity for development of a clean and balanced society in any
age. The prime cause for the breakdown of many a marriage between happy
couples today, not only in the Western society but also elsewhere in the world,
may be rightly traced to the source of illicit relationships between men and women
other than their own married partners, developed first in offices, public functions,
parties and dances followed later by secret meetings, and all due to unrestricted
exposure to each other. In fact, as long as one knows of the beauty and traits of
one's own husband or wife only, one remains attracted and devoted exclusively to
him or her. But the moment one is exposed to the beauty and traits of anyone else
of the opposite sex, by and large, consideration of these qualities in his or her
partner does become relative whereby, in many a case, one is inclined to feel that
others are more attractive, graceful, talented and what not than one's own spouse, a
nature prompting the human being to acquire or possess what it considers better,
rightly or wrongly. Every intelligent person understands this grave problem that
has been ever confronting the human society. Therefore, Islam has taken adequate
155
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
steps to prevent this social evil from even trying to raise its head by permitting
unrestricted association between specified women and men only and prohibiting
the rest for good.
I have already discussed the economic structure of Islamic philosophy and
way of life earlier, clarifying how Islam has shown the right way to develop a
balanced economy for the individual, the society, the state and the world
community as a whole under the umbrella of Islam, each being complementary to
the other, absolutely free from exploitation, confrontation and class war
whatsoever. After all, in any system right or wrong, adequate exhortation,
guidance, policing and deterrent punishments are necessities for keeping the
individual as well as the society at large on the standard track and Islam is no
exception. This function which is an essential aspect of the Islamic way of life is
performed by the two living institutions known as the Shariah Laws" and
"Enjoining what is right and forbidding what is Evil."
Performance of the five compulsory prayers daily by all men in congregation,
shoulder joined to shoulder, the first to come occupying the forward positions
devoid of any reservations based on social or colour distinctions; performance of
the Hajj pilgrimage rites during the annual gathering at Makkah and its suburbs
during the second week of the lunar month of Zulhijjah every year, as well as the
lesser pilgrimage rites of Umrah at the sacred Mosque, also at Makkah round the
year in devotion and total submission to the call of Allah by all people with health
and means from all over the world as equal brothers and sisters without any social,
racial or colour discrimination whatsoever (all men dressed in the same symbolic,
unique and simple attire of a pair of two-metre-long pieces of cloth and all ladies
dressed in simple but modest clothes; eating by sharing the same kinds of foods
available there for the millions of people in plenty; sleeping in the open or in tents
exposed to the extreme weather and enviromnent of the desert land, very seldom
comfortable), remind the Muslim peoples of the absolute equality that Islam
advocates among all Muslims. During the pilgrimmage rites, the women, however,
shall be present in full dress, exposing only the face and forearms, with a view
toward modesty.
In Islam there is no specific and compulsory religious rest day (Sabbath) like
the Saturday of the Jews and the Sunday of the Christians when no work is
permitted. In Hebrew as well as Arabic the word "Sabbath" denotes Saturday.
However, it is compulsory for all able bodied Muslims to attend the midday prayer
every Friday in congregation, and preferably, at the local mosque of each area
when, prior to the saying of prayers, a sermon is delivered from the pulpit by the
156
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
157
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
beings; as well as those of other animals and birds, have been considered unclean,
requiring the excreting parts of the human body as well as any part of the human
body or dress that comes in contact with these wet excretions to be washed
thoroughly with clean water.
On the social front, giving away charity (sadaqah) to the poor and the needy
by identifying them has been enjoined by Islam on all Muslims frequently. In
addition, the payment of the compulsory Zakaat (the sharing of prosperity with the
deserving less affluents in the society) compulsory fasting for the whole of the
twenty-nine or thirty days, as the case may be, during the lunar month of
Ramadhan every year through complete abstention from all kinds of food, drinks
and smoking from dawn to dusk has also been prescribed for all able-bodied men
and women. This latter experience must naturally bring to the mind of every
person the extreme hardship and misery that a hungry person must undergo, day in
and day out, thereby prompting the society as a whole to ensure that no one really
goes around hungry for want of food and water, the most essential things to sustain
life, after air.
Thus, socially, every Muslim is expected to be absolutely clean, in body,
mind, speech, behaviour and actions as best as possible and eager to assist one
another, sharing each other's prosperity and woe so that the society progresses as a
whole like a single body that feels as a whole the agony orcomfort caused to any
part of the limbs of the social body. Naturally, it is no wonder that remaining clean
and loving brothers, concerned about the well-being of the other brothers, Muslims
are much concerned about their coreligionists abroad beyond the otherwise
normally accepted nationality limitations. All should eat from the same plate as
well as drink from the same cup, as expected by Islam. This is the social ideal
projected by Islam to evolve a just model society not only for a group, a society, a
country alone, but for a state and even for the whole world.
158
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
terms of the treaty and then no more war is permitted. The Quraan declares; "And
say not of those who are slain in the way of Allah 'they are dead'-nay, they are
living, ye perceive it not," and "Think not of those are slain in the way of Allah as
dead. Nay, they live finding their sustenance in the presence of their Lord. They
rejoice in bounty provided by Allah. And with regard to those left behind who
have not yet joined them (in their bliss) the martyr's glory is that on them is no
fear, nor have they (cause to) grieve" (2:164; 3:169,170). Even according to the
human law, the dead in the cause of defending freedom are termed 'martyrs" who
in fact, are not only ever remembered, but their dependents are also well provided
for Islam is no exception in holding this view in respect of a person who dies in the
way of Allah. When a Muslim has to love Allah and his faith more than anything
else, it is only just that he too be prepared to die in the battlefield for the sake of
his principles. On the offer of a just truce by the enemy, with guarantees to refrain
from tumult and oppression, the war must be stopped, honouring agreements and
truce terms as long as the enemy too abides by them. Keeping of words as well as
solemn promises and fulfillment of contracts are also enjoined on Muslims.
In Islam, there is no ban on loyal nonMuslims occupying administrative and
other positions of the state that do not entitle them to the administration of either
Islamic Shariah laws or enjoining what is right and forbidding what is wrong in
Islam. This is a logical sequence on account of the fact that in an Islamic State
consisting of a population that is predominantly Muslim, a nonMuslim can neither
be expected nor ordered to propagate Islamic values and law. For the same reason
a nonMuslim cannot become the head of state of an Islamic state. Just as Muslims
pay Zakaat, part of which is spent on maintaining an Islamic army and security
forces, the nonMuslims who do not pay Zakaat are expected to pay a security tax
called "'Jizya" (in token of having accepted the supremacy of the state as a loyal
citizen), whereby he is also guaranteed security ofthe state (9:29). Further, in an
Islamic state, no law repugnant to the injunctions of the Quraan may be enacted.
Subject to these few conditionst any nonMuslim citizen who does not openly
oppose the Islamic values and faith has the same freedom including worship as any
Muslim. In this regard, the Quraan states clearly:
Fight in the cause of Allah those who fight you, but do not transgress limits:
For Allah does not like transgressors; and slay them wherever you catch
them, and turn them out from where they have turned you out; for tumult
and
oppression
are
worse
159
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
than manslaughter: but fight them not at the Sacred Mosque (Kaabah at
Makkah) unless they first fight you there: But if they fight you, slay them:
Such is the reward of those who suppress faith. But if they cease Allah is
Oft Forgiving, Most Merciful And fight them until there is no tumult or
oppression and there prevail justice and faith in Allah; but if they cease, let
there be no hostility except to those who practice oppresaion (2:190-193);
To those against whom war is made, permission is given because
they are wronged; and verily, Allah is most powerful for their aid; they are
those who have been expelled from their homes in defiance of right for (no
cause other) than that they say Our Lord is Allah.' Did not Allah check one
set of people by another, surely they would have pulled down monasteries,
churches, synagogues and mosques in which the name of Allah is
commemorated in abundant measure ... (22:39,40);
Let there be no compulsion in religion: Truth stands out from error,
whomsoever rejects Evil and believes in Allah has grasped the most
trustworthy h&Ddhold that never breaks; and Allah heareth and knoweth all
things (2:256).
The above passages from the Quraan have been quoted for dispelling once and
for all the grave mistaken notions in respect of religious toleration, religious war
and propagation of Islam that, unfortunately, have become embedded in the minds
of nonMusJims for no fault of this great religion and its sincere followers during
the lifetime of prophet Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be on him) as
well as ever since his death 1400 years ago.
Faith and Belief on Life in This World and Life after Death
It is a faith and belief with Muslims that the human being is accountable for
all his actions. All the human beings who were dead will be resurrected to face the
final judgment of Allah on the last day' of this universe, the day when "the stars
become dim, when the heaven is cleft asunder, when the mountains are scattered as
dust" (79:8-10) "and when the earth is flattened out and casts forth what is within it
and becomes empty" (84:3,4), and the judgment will be delivered justly on the
basis of a balance sheet of all deeds, good and bad, performed by each individual
during his only one lifetime in this world. This is so because human beings have
been bestowed with discriminatory and thinking faculties to judge for themselves
what is good and bad in relation to the guidance provided to them at all ages
through
the
160
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
prophets among them. The choosing of either good or bad lay squarely on their
own individual shoulders, just the same way that the laws of a country also
operate. The Quraan is very clear on this point, as is stated at 11:115; "And be
steadfast in patience for surely Allah will not suffer the reward of the righteous to
suffer," "And then on that (judgment) day, not a soul will be wronged in the least
and ye shall be repaid the meeds of your past deeds" (36:54). It is said in the
Quraan that the deeds of each and every person are recorded in a Book of Deeds,
exclusively for each person, by two dedicated angels, one for recording the good
deeds and the other for recording the bad deeds (50:16,17;18), and that on the
judgment day the Book of Deeds of each person, which "leaves out nothing small
or great but takes account thereof," shall be produced before him as concrete proof
in this connection as evidence for and against each deed (8:49). That keeping a
dedicated record of each person's actions is possible even for the developed man
with the help of computer can give a clear idea to us how Allah, the Creator of the
very man who invented the computer, as well as the rest of the universe, may get
any document He needs by much more superior and efficient means as He likes,
and therefore there should be nothing unimaginable or wonderful in this issue. It is
clearly stated in the Quraan that on the "last judgment day, each and every
person shall be dealt with justly on the basis of his own Book of Deeds and that no
excuse or intercession by anyone else without the specific permission of Allah
shall be accepted.
161
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
the existing universe, what comes next is within the exclusive realm of Allah, the
Absolute and Super Planner, Designer, and Creator of everything.
162
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Muslims, but no such decision that goes against or ignores either any specific
injunction of the Quraan or any specific teaching of the prophet in this regard may
be amended by such consensus even by the doctors of religious jurisprudence.
Thus, just because the rest of the world has accepted any particular system
conflicting with the law given by Allah through the Quraan-say, for example, the
case of punishment of killing the murderer which according to the modern
consensus is that instead of executing the killer to death, he should be sent to jail
for changing his mental outlook-cannot be adopted also by Muslims for the
reasons that it is against the specific directive of the Quraan, which has prescribed
the law of "equality" (Qisas), whereby the punishment to the killer is death, unless
the aggrieved party is prepared to accept "blood money" of its choice. The
"canonical" punishment prescribed by the Islamic Shariah laws based on the
Quraan and the examples set by the holy prophet must be administered by the
rulers without showing any mercy. That this is the only deterrent for minimising
crime has been totally proven in the Kingdom of Saudi Arabia, where the Islamic
Sbariah law, with its drastic punishments ordered by Allah, has successfully
operated among Muslims as well as on expatriate nonMuslims, for the last four
decades or so, making this the unique country in the world where crime rates are
the lowest.lt also cannot be forgotten that even now there is a clamor from the
people, particularly in the United States and the United Kingdom, to reintroduce
the death penalty to the killers and rapists because these kinds of crime have
recorded an increase, putting the safety and honour of people in jeopardy.
There is a misunderstanding that Islam has prescribed only a democratic
government and therefore a so-called king is not acceptable. Such an idea is
contrary to Islam. Islam has kept this open for the people to decide. In fact the
Quraan states that both Dawood (David) and Sulaiman (Solomon) (peace be on
them) were kings as well as prophets. The acceptance of the ruler by the people is
what is essential. A benevolent ruler (leader of good morals who leaves no stone
unturned to keep all sections of the people happy and satisfied as far as security
and honour of the individual, availability of essential needs of life at prices one can
afford, social welfare and equal opportunity to rise in any field on natural merit to
all in the state are concerned), should therefore be acceptable to Muslims provided
that he is acceptable to them on due merits irrespective of the fact whether he be
elected, self-appointed, one person, a few persons or a group of people. It should
not be forgotten that even in democratic as well as communist ways of
government, a strong minority of people, at times quite large but only a little less
than
half
the
total
population
of
a
democratic
country
163
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
164
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
tion of the greatness and powers of Allah who alone has planned and created them
all to function harmoniously within the specified limits and order allocated to each.
Thus, Islam encourages the faithful to go in pursuit of research, science and
technology that may enrich body, mind and the environment.
165
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
the basis of their "Books of Deeds," such repentance shall not be accepted by
Allah. Such a person shall not be given one more chance by Allah to live in the
world or elsewhere for making amends either.
Islam does not tolerate either taking any partners in the powers of Allah or His
worship or adoration, or paying absolute sovereignty to anything other than Allah,
to whom no demigods, sons, wives, relations, proxies or agents may also be
attributed whatsoever. He is only One, without beginning, end, limitations of time
or space and is All knowing, All powerful. When He decides to set into motion His
absolute will, He only says "Be", and it is There." He is Omnipotent, Omniscient,
Omnipresent, limitless and transcendent. Sole planner, designer, creator, sustainer
and disposer of what is in the universe and beyond. Allah is just, beneficient,
benevolent and kind to all His Creations. This is the acute faith of the Muslims. All
the above shows that the universe and the human beings have all been created with
some definite purpose in view which Allah, the only creator, alone knows!
Conclusion
As seen from the preceding detailed analysis, it should be quite clear that all
the guidelines and laws of Islam on the total life of the human beings are objective
and rational, aimed at the development of a regulated society mainly on the basis
of spiritually-based moral values and love; to evolve a welfare state for all where
"Milk and Honey" could flow, not by compulsion, but as the result of honest
endeavours of each member of the society according to the needs and with mutual
consideration, ushering in an era of plenty and contentment. In such a society,
everything would be produced out of love and without compulsion at all in such
plenty that rather than need, things will set distributed according to requirement.
See how contrasting this approach to human life is with a life consisting of eternal
war between classes and mutual confrontation assumed by manmade ways of life,
such as Communism. Alas, due to ignorance of the great practical religion of
lslam, which was evolved by Allah for the total emancipation of mankind, some of
the nineteenth century philosophers concocted new theories and practices such as
"Communism'' out of the small and very limited knowledge they had of the
potential and behaviour of the human being, the nature around him and the larger
harmonic universe with a false hope of creating an era of satisfaction. During the
early twentieth century, the organisation of the Bolsheviks brought into
166
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
167
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
168
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
169
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Chapter 8
Jainism
Introduced about the sixth century B.C.E. by Vardhamana Mahavira, Jainism,
which probably appears to have been adhered to by dissenters from Hinduism, is
almost as old as Buddhism. Referred to in the Buddhist canon as the religion of the
rival sect of the Nigaranthas" (free from bonds), it has a strong monastic order.
Numbering less than two million people, inhabiting mainly the northern areas of
the Indian west coast, the wealth of the Jains has given them greater influence than
their small number in a country whose population is about 800 million.
The Jain traditions claim that Mahavira was the descendant of a line of
twenty-three earlier saints or prophets (Thirthakas) called Jainas (conquerors or
leaders), who had all attained redemption (Nirvana), the first of them being the
mythical Rishabha (the golden bull) and the twenty-third being Parshva (blue
snake), who lived 260 years before Mahavira. Thirtanakaras (saints) are
worshipped as gods (devas). Nemi(black conch), who is supposed to be Parshva's
predecessor and related to Krishna of the Hindu Bhagvat Geetha, is worshipped in
many Jain temples. Like all his predecessors, Mahavira is said to have been a
Kshatriya by caste, belonging to Vaishali, a place in the Indian state of Behar.
Brought up a Jain, he became a monk who discarded his clothes and, after getting a
following of eleven disciples, died at the age of seventy-two about 477 B.C.E. The
religious centres of the sect are Mount Abu in Rajputana, Gerar, Santrunjaya and
Ellora, all in India.
The Jain tradition states that Mahavira, a contemporary of Buddha but slightly
older, was the twenty-fourth Jaina (saint or prophet) of the cult whose predecessor
was Parshva (Blue Snake), who lived two and a half centuries earlier, and that
Mahavira preached his code of ethics without knowing that the same was preached
by his predecessor earlier. The code of conduct of Jainism as preached by both are:
Not to kill living beings;
Not to tell a lie;
170
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
171
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
vigorously in northern India. Inscriptions also show that during the second century
B.C.E. the Jains were powerful in the part of India called Orissa in the northeast.
Later, as the result of schism, the lax new sect of Ardhaphalakas appeared during
the time of Bhadrabahu, which by about the year 80 C.E. had developed into the
white-robed Swathambaras. The conversion of the powerful Sidharaja of Gujarat
gave Jains their first royal patron, under whom and some of his successors Jainism
acquired a strong position in the west of India. The Digambaras possess the older
Sanskrit religious literature and the Swathambaras, the canon.
The Jainist cult has no absolute godhead. Sharing the theoretical pessimism of
the Buddhist, Samkhya and yoga philosophies, Jainism aims at the liberation from
the transmigration of souls (Samsara) of the Hindu doctrine. While matter exists as
something, it may become anything; being infinite is complex. All substances are
divided into lifeless ones and souls or lives (jiva), the former becoming anything
and in the realm of the lowest stage of development, the elements being bodies of
souls. Although souls are substances, they are not matter; yet they are capable of
expansion, indestructible and characterised by intelligence that cannot be
destroyed. Souls are of two kindsmundane and liberated, the former subjected to
the transmigration cycle and the latter being disembodied for ever, just the same as
in the Hindu philosophical doctrine. Into the mundane soul is poured suitable
matter, ready to be transformed into karma of eight kinds, and combining with the
soul it forms a subtle body determining its state and lot; having done its work,
every karma is purged off the soul until it is light enough to ascend to the top of
the universe. However, in the actual life, fresh karma tends to replace those
eliminated and the souls must enter a new body at the time of death. The soul has
six transcendental colours three good and three bad indicating its character and
the soul itself may enter various stages according to whether the karma is
neutralised, annihilated or partly one or the other. The first of the many vows is not
to kill, observance of which demands a remarkable care to preserve all living
things and for the strict practice of which the mouth should be kept covered with a
cloth lest the life in the air be either injured or even polluted. Vermin may be
removed, but not injured or killed, and the home should be kept scrupulously
clean. Enforcement of intense monastic discipline consisting of bodily restraints,
chastity, abstinence from alcohol, meat, honey and roots, as well as the
maintenance of mental discipline, purity of thought, contemplation, confession and
repentance are the essential aspects of Jainism, which denies attainment of Nirvana
(ultimate
redemption)
by
women.
172
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
There is no doubt that like other derivations of Hinduism like Buddhism and
Sikhism, the evolution of Jainism too was the inevitable result of the utter
confusion caused by the innumerable deities, caste system and the impossible
Karma-Dharma-Samsara oriented redemption process, among other things, with
the objective of evolving a sound, logical and practical philosophy, basically from
the known Hindu way of thought and life, ensuring equality among men and
attainment of redemption from rebirths. Nevertheless, as proved by history, none
of these newer movements did actually succeed to align even a reasonable number
of the bulk of the masses of Hindu India behind them except for a very short time.
As compared to Buddhism, which emphasised complete renunciation of the world
for the attainment of Nirvana (complete redemption by union with the Supreme
essence) of the soul through Samadhi (blowing out), due to the association of a
limited laity the renunciation doctrine through permission granted by Jainism to
carry on with secular pursuits by the devotee, made it more attractive to the
dissidents from Hinduism, making Jainism thrive with royal patronage for some
time in limited areas of India. A layman, thus, may make vows of renunciation
after he has made sufficient progress without actually entering the monastic order
or taking full obligations on him. This is the reason why there are many persons of
affluence and fortune found among Jains in India as compared to the rest,
considering their insignificant total population. While suicide is a sin, both ascetics
and laymen may hasten death by voluntary starvation though to the latter this is
permissible during old age only. The real disadvantage of Jainism is that it is
essentially a creed of a cultivated and affluent class from which, naturally, the bulk
of the masses is excluded. As schism developed in the sect, which had gone too
far, in the fifteenth century C.E. Longa Sha, the Jain, denounced idol worship and
founded Dhundia (Searchers) or Shanakavasi sect, which in turn further split up
into several subsects.
Although believed to be vast, very few of the Jain literature have been
published. The Digambaras say that most of the older ones are lost and the
Swatambaras have preserved only a part of theirs. Books are, however, strictly
safeguarded and even zealously concealed. In architecture Jains have excelled, and
although Buddhist models were adopted in stupas and cave temples, they carried
the art of carving in stone to a very high degree of precision and beauty. Jain
temples display a mixture of their own and Moghul features and architecture.
As is seen from the foregoing, Jainism is an order and creed fit for the affluent
class of the dissident Hindu society which, after getting rich, may go into strict
monastic discipline after taking vows to uphold
173
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
chastity and renunciation of everything mundane with the aim of liberating the
soul from transmigration through attainment of Nirvana, which, however, is denied
to women. The creed usually excludes the common mass of the people from its
ranks. Whereas Hinduism has the main trinity godhead of Trimoorthi and
thousands. of other gods and goddesses to worship as deities for specific purposes,
Jainism does not believe in God, although the souls can reach a divine status, the
soul and the world being self-existent and eternal. The chief aim of Nirvana is the
performance of austerities by which one may destroy the old Karma and prevent
the formation of the new by subjecting oneself to the right faith, right knowledge
and right conduct at all time.
174
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Chapter 9
Judaism
Judaism, Jews and the Children of Israel
Judaism is the religion and way of life of the ethnic community of the twelve tribes
of the children of Israel, known generally as Jews. Based on rigidly strict
monotheism, shunning idols and images, the Jews worship the Only One God and
have a set of basic beliefs and values concentrating on actions, social order,
culture, statement and concepts of the individual as well as community which are
preferential to the people belonging to the twelve children of the patriarch Jacob
(peace be upon him), who was re-designated by God as Israel. Siddour, the prayer
book of Jews, emphasizes that God is One. Shima, the Jewish confession of faith,
states that God, who is the creator of the universe and who has chosen Israel in
love by giving the Torah (teaching, guidance, direction, or simply "The Law''), is
"One" and that His love is to be reciprocated by Israel through obeying the Torah,
for which they will be rewarded and the rebellious punished.
As found from the Hebrew scriptures and traditions, foundation of the Israeli
religion was laid after the exodus from Egypt, about the thirteenth to fifteenth
century B.C.E. when the only One God of prophets Abraham, Isaac, Ishmail and
Jacob (peace be upon them), in His love, liberated the children of Israel from
Egypt under the able leadership of prophet Moses (peace be upon him), punishing
their oppressors, consisting of Pharoah and his men with plagues and other
calamities, with final drowning at the sea. At Sinai, God spoke to the children of
Israel through Moses (peace be on him), made them His selected people and gave
them His covenant regarding their conduct towards Him as well as with each other
and the rest of men so as to make them a holy nation for the purpose of leading the
rest of the people for the first time in the history of the children of Adam (peace be
on him) on the earth. After sustaining them miraculously with a supply of heavenly
food during their forty years of nomadic life in the wilderness of the Sinai, as a
punishment for their first rebellious disobedience particularly the worship of the
cow
and
refusal
to
occupy
the
land
to
the
north
175
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
176
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Nabiim (the Prophets), and the Kitabim (the Books). The Torah is found in the
Holy Bible of Christian faith known as the Old Testament. The Pentateuch,
containing Genesis, Exodus, Leviticus, Numbers and Deuteronomy of the Old
Testament, traditionally called the five books of Moses (peace be upon him), is the
most revered of all the religious books of the Jews. It is the main canon of Jewish
faith, morals, worship, sacrifice, and questions of law and conduct. In fact, Torah
being God's revelations to Moses, (peace be upon him) these five books only
should have been considered as "Torah." The Nibiim (Prophets), a collection of
eight books according to the Jews but showing in twenty-one chapters in the Old
Testament of Christians, is ascribed to major and minor prophets of Israel after
Moses (peace be upon him) as well as to several others describing the history and
contexts of the eras of the different prophets. The remaining, called "Hegiagraph"
or sacred writings (Kitabim) contain psalms, proverbs, songs and the like
constituting poetic literature of the Old Testament.
The Mishna (the Rabbinic Law) appears to have been compiled and used as a
standard royal version by Prince Judah sometime between 220 and 175 B.C.E.
from the then existing practices and the Mirdashim of the various recognised
schools of Jewish thought. Because the Mishna did not give enough freedom to the
Jewish rabbis to further interpret the Law as tradition demanded, it soon came into
disfavour with the clerical intelligentsia, and therefore became semi-canonical.
Therefore, the Mirdashims on the Pentateuch was compiled and brought into use.
About the same period, the Talmud (Teachings), containing the Mishna,
commentaries and other matters based on the Palestinian and Babylonian
collections, was also compiled. The main law of Jews has been based on
Deuteronomy, which in the Bible is seen as the fifth book of Moses (peace be upon
him). As stated at the outset of this narrative book, these are the words that Moses
spoke to all Israel beyond the Jordan in the wilderness but not referred to as the
words of God given to the children of Israel through Moses (peace be upon him).
However, in the four books of the Law of the Covenant in the Pentateuch
considerable material appears in the first person commands of God to the Israeli
people, although the first book, Exodus, is mostly third person narrative.
Jewish Law and Ethics
The Jewish scripture the Torah, which is believed by the Jews to be the Law
of God given to the children of Israel through Moses (peace be upon him), apart
from requiring them to worship and seek the Only One God, protects the value of
life,
limb,
labour,
social
solidarity,
rela-
177
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
tions between men within and without their own clans, and rights as well as
obligations of the individual. However, the laws do discriminate between the
children of Israel and others, being preferential to the children of Israel. It orders
the performance of sacrifice by Jews of oxen, rams and cereals, as well as burnt
offerings exclusively to the Only One God at the appointed altars only as a tribute
or way of expression of gratitude, thanksgiving or as a guilt offering. It abolishes
involuntary perpetual slavery of Hebrews and a seven-year limit is set on such
bondage. However, the selling of one's own daughters is not forbidden (Exod.
21:7-11) under certain conditions. One who beats his slave to death is also to face
death and one who maims his slave must set him free. Asylum is denied to a
murderer, who may not ransom himself from death. For injuries done intentionally
to the limbs of another's body, justice on "an eye for an eye" principle is ordained
and monetary punishments are provided for harming properties and committing
theft. Priesthood is reserved for the sons of Aaron, the brother of Moses (peace be
upon them), the family of Levi assisting as the ministers at rites of the altars and
none else. Death is the punishment for taking gods other than the Only One God,
homosexuality, cursing of parents, adultery, and posing as mediums or wizards.
However, in the event of committing adultery with a slave woman betrothed to
another man, "a guilt offering at the altar" may grant pardon to the culprit.
Marriage between near blood relations is prohibited, the penalty imposed for
contravention being death. For committing indecencies, such as seeing the
nakedness of blood relations or of a third woman, punishment of either cutting off
from their people or divine punishment of dying childless or bearing a sin or
inequity is mentioned. The buying and selling of slaves from non-Israelite stock is
permitted and they may be kept for life as one's own property. Strict observance of
the sacred calendar and holy times as well as circumcision and the weekly Sabbath
on every Saturday, on which work of any kind is forbidden on the grounds that
after creating the world in six days even God rested on the seventh day and
hallowed it (Gen. 2:1-3), are ordained. Theft, telling lies, swearing falsely on God,
eating blood or dead meat or meat of certain specified creatures, which includes
swine, camel, rock badger, hare and carnivorous animals and birds, are forbidden.
Usury is prohibited among Israeli brethren, but is permitted while lending to nonIsraelites. The Torah permits polygamy (Deut. 21:15) as well as divorce for
indecency. However, a bill of divorce is to be given: to the woman who, while not
prevented from marrying another person, may not be remarried by the divorcing
man even after divorce by another. The elaborate rituals as specified in Exodus,
chapters
35
and
36,
of
the
Old
178
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Testament - such as the assembly in the tent of the meeting housing the tabernacle
and containing the Ark, the Covenant, the mercy seat, the lamp stead, the incense,
the anointing oil, the altars of sacrifice as well as burning, the garments of the
priests, the specification of the animals to be sacrificed how, when and where, and
how the meat and blood of the sacrificed animals are to be disposed of and so on
have become the symbol of Jewish priesthood.
The Early Life of the Children of Israel
In the early days, the goal of the Israelite people for many centuries being
conquest and retention of the land promised to their forefather patriarchs by God,
their religion too had a warlike feature. The religion was therefore confined to the
children of Israel alone, as so was it intended by YHWH too. As seen from Exod.
12:14, the Israeli people finally organized as an army called hosts of YHWEH and
encamped in a protective square around their palladium, which was a tent housing
the tabernacle and its paraphernalia, of which the most important constituent being
the Ark housing the stone tablets containing God's Covenant to the children of
Israel. While travelling, the sacred things were carried and guarded by the Levites,
the Aaronites having the absolute monopoly of the priesthood. God - YHWH,
sometimes called "The Warrior" - marched with the Israeli army and, in wars, part
of the booty was delivered to the ministers, the priests and Levites. After conquest
of Canaan, during the time of Joshua soon after the death of Moses (peace be upon
him), the Israelites started life along with the older Hebrews there who were
already settled tribes down from the patriarchal times. Israel's eastern and western
neighbours appeared now as new enemies and the period of "Judges" or leaders,
champions, began.
Rise and Fall of Faith, Apostasy and Punishment
Soon after the death of Joshua, who had succeeded to lead the children of
Israel after the death of Moses (peace be upon him), they had taken to worship of
Baal and Ashtroth and many other inequities acquired from the local communities,
which was in contravention of the Law of the Covenant. The second Book of the
Old Testament, Exodus, states that rebellion and apostasy of the children of Israel
had started even during the lifetime of Moses (peace be upon him) when, soon
after God spoke and gave the Covenant to them, they had taken
179
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
to cow worship for which they were punished with the death of all those who were
responsible for this act of apostasy. Repeated cycles of apostasy, demigod worship
and oppression punctuated by Divine punishments and subsequent appeals to God
followed. God in His infinite mercy had been so kind to the people that in spite of
their blasphemies their appeals had been responded to through God-sent
champions such as Othneil, Ehud, Deborah, Gideon, Samson and others mentioned
in the Book of Judges, whereby through miraculous rescue operations the faith of
the Israeli people in God had been kept alive. The Book of Judges states that they
had gone after the worship of gods of Canaanites (Baal and Ashtaroth) the gods of
Syrians, (Moab), Ammonites, Philistines, Sidon and others, many a time in
succession. As per the Book of Samuel, Gideon refused to found a dynasty on the
plea that the popular demand for a king was tantamount to a rejection of the
Kingdom of God. Arrival of a number of inspired saviours through Jerubaal,
Bedan and Jephtah to Samuel followed. However, on the plea of Samuel that
monarchy is a gift of God designed to rescue the people from the Philistines,
contradicting the views of Gideon, Saul was made the King through divine election
and popular acclamation soon after his victory over the Ammorites, and thus
dawned the era of Kings. During the reign of the prophet King David (peace be
upon him), the Ark was redeemed and installed in the City of David in Jerusalem
about 900-1000 B.C.E. again in a tent as during the post-Mosaic period. It was
during the reign of the prophet King Solomon (peace be upon him) that the temple
of God was built in Jerusalem and worship inaugurated in.it with all the grandeur it
deserved, in accordance with the plan of his father, David (peace be upon him). It
is stated that 153,600 people were engaged for twenty years in building the temple.
180
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
of Israel of not only hating Jesus Christ (peace be on him), the prophet of God
(peace be on him), but also of going to the extent of collaborating with the Roman
heathens to kill him has been detailed as a pathetic horror story in the Bible. All
the Gospels of the New Testament state that the Jews even preferred the murderer
Barabbas to be pardoned than Jesus Christ (peace be on him), the messenger of
God (peace be on him), whose supposed crime," in fact, was that he preached
among the Jews to repent, obey God and seek the right path of the law and the
prophets shown by his Gospels from none other than the God of their own
forefathers. It is thus a safe conclusion that the final dispersal of the children of
Israel all over the world after the final destruction of the Jewish state of Palestine
during the latter part of the first century C.E. until the new Zionist state of Israel
was established in 1948 C.E., and the earlier mass conviction of Jews to
concentration camps as well as the murder of millions of them by firing squads and
in gas chambers under the orders of Hitler during the ten-year Nazi rule prior to the
defeat of the Axis Powers in the Second World War cannot but be considered as a
link in the chain of punishments inflicted by God on the children of Israel for
doing what was evil in the eyes of God. Their Lord. It cannot also be lost sight of
that even after the creation of the Zionist state of Israel, it seems as though it has
remained in a state of siege from the Arab nations around because, established in a
land rightly belonging to Arabs, the question of rehabilitation of millions of
Palestinian Arabs who were displaced from the new state of Israel has still
remained a burning question over three decades since. The repercussions of this
tragedy have not only affected the good relationship between all the nations of the
world, but have also kept the Arab countries and the Zionist state in perpetual
confrontation, resulting in wars of attrition between the two more than once during
the last thirty or more years. Even today the foundations of the holy state of the
children of Israel does not appear to be on strong ground because as all know, the
three million of them concentrated in the holy land have had to be in state of war
readiness, wasting billions of dollars on war materials since the founding of the
state thirty-five years ago.
Nevertheless, what all the children of Israel have been doing since the creation
of their new state under a halo of religious obligation and duty may appear to them
as necessary acts for regaining and consolidating the holy land that their
forefathers had lost by way of divine punishment tens of hundreds of years ago due
to their own misdeeds after it was given to them by the extreme mercy of YHWH,
as stated in the Old Testament. However, looking at it dispassionately from the
viewpoint of the fully developed modern man of today, it cannot but be said that
they
have
been
personally
responsible
not
only
for
the
181
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
eviction of millions of native Arabs including women, children and the old from
their ancestrally owned homes and lands forcing the almost as many as the Jews of
Israel itself, to live as abject refugees and beggars for decades with no end in sight
for termination of their suffering, many of whom having been maimed and tortured
or killed during the hostilities. The irony is that this has been happening against a
people who are also believers in the same One God of the children of Israel. Will
not history then repeat as before, yet again, for these acts of the children of Israel
for doing "what is evil in the eyes of God," to repeat what is oft repeated in the Old
Testament? The world has yet to see!
182
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
of the Lord, in the second round "they slew their young men with sword in the
house of their sanctuary and had no compassion on young man or virgin, old man
or aged. He gave them all into his hand. And all the vessels of the house of the
Lord, and all the treasures of the king and of his princes, all these he brought to
Babylon. And they burned the house of God, and broke down the wall of
Jerusalem and burned all its places with fire and destroyed all its precious vessels.
He took into exile in Babylon those who had escaped from the sword, and they
became the servants to him and to his sons until the establishment of the Kingdom
of Persia, to fulfil the word of the Lord, through the mouth of Jeremiah, until the
land had enjoyed its Sabbaths. All the days it lay desolate it kept Sabbath, to fulfil
seventy years" (II Kings 24:9--17; II Chron. 36:17-21; and Jer. 25:11-12). The
Babylonian captivity of the Jews is stated to have lasted for nearly two centuries.
History and Authenticity of the Torah and Jewish Scriptures
The Old Testament says that the Ten Commandments inscribed on the stone
tablets were delivered by God to Moses (peace be on him) when the former spoke
to the latter at the Sinai Mountain as the head of the Children of Israel. Then,
"when Moses had finished writing the words of this law in a book, to the very
end," he commanded the Levites who carried the ark of the Covenant of the Lord:
"Take this book of the law, and put it by the side of the ark of the covenant of the
Lord, your God, that it may be there for a witness against you: For I know how
rebellious and stubborn you are; behold, while I am yet alive with you, today you
have been rebellious against the Lord; how much more after my death!" (Deut.
31:24-27), and "At the end of every seven years, at the set time of release, at the
feast of booths when all Israel appear before the Lord your God at the place He
will choose, you shall read this law before all Israel in their hearing ... " (Deut.
31:9-13). The law must have been revealed to Moses (peace be on him) during the
period of his ministry, which probably was conferred on him at the age of 40 years
or so of his reported life of one hundred twenty years. The style of the writing of at
least the first five books attributed to Moses (peace be on him) four of which
contain the law, does not appear to be as originally revealed by God to Moses
(peace be on him). The whole book of the Bible appears like a narrative or story,
only quoting some words of God and the prophets here and there. A holy book
from God must remain completely in the first person of God as given through his
specific spokesmen, the prophets. It therefore seems that after losing the original
holy tablets and the words of God's law written by Moses
183
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
(peace be on him), in a book written in the prophet's own hand in later years, some
scribes compiled the books as they appear today from hearsay, all of which may
not be correct reproductions of the originals of even Ezra. The original stone
tablets supposed to have been given to Moses (peace be on him) and the Ark as
well as the book written by Moses (peace be on him) which were all required to be
preserved as witnesses had been certainly lost altogether by the children of Israel
long before the advent of Jesus (peace be on him) because these are not available
anywhere today.
Going back to Biblical history itself, the oldest translation of the Old
Testament from the Hebrew original seems to have been the Septuagint of the third
century B.C.E. which was in the Greek language. Prior to that, the literature
remained a Hebrew document. It is seen from verses 36:14-21 of the Chronicles of
the Old Testament that "all the leading priests and the people likewise of Israel
were exceedingly unfaithful following all abominations of the nations and they
polluted the house of the Lord which he had hallowed in Jerusalem ... they kept
mocking the messengers of God, despising His words, and scoffing at His prophets
till the wrath of the Lord rose against His people till there was no remedy.
Therefore, He brought against them the king of Chaldeans who slew their young
men with the sword in the house of their sanctuary and had no compassion on
young man or virgin, old man or aged; He gave them all into his hands ....And they
broke down the wall of Jerusalem and burned all its places with fire.... He took into
exile in Babylon those who had escaped from the sword and they became servants
to him and to his sons until the establishment of the Kingdom of Persia....All the
days that it lay desolate it kept Sabbath, to full seventy years." It was during the
rule of Cyrus about 500-600 B.C.E. that the Israelites numbering then less than
50,000, were let off from Babylonian captivity and allowed to return to Palestine.
It was a few years later and after the rebuilding of the destroyed temple in
Jerusalem by the Israelites that the Persian king Artaxerxes ordered the Jewish
scribe Ezra under a royal charter "to set his heart to study the law of the Lord and
to do it and to teach his statutes and ordinances in Israel"' (Ezra 7:10). It is thus the
only conclusion that with the destruction of the temple of Jerusalem by fire and the
killing of all young old and old men of even the slightest knowledge and
importance, not a bit of the original law, the Ark and the stone tablets including
"the written word of this law in a book to the very end," which Moses (peace be on
him) himself having written, was entrusted to the Levites "to be put by the side of
the ark of the covenant of the Lord, your God, that it may be there for a witness
against
you,"
and
184
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
kept in the temple at Jerusalem (Deut. 31:24-29), could have escaped total
destruction by fire. Seventy years of desolation of Jerusalem and two centuries of
captivity of the Israelites under heathens in Babylon as slaves following the
holocaust and total destruction is a very long period indeed. It is therefore quite
unreasonable to expect that any authentic version of the original Torah could have
ever survived even orally among the less important Israelites who survived the
genocide in Jerusalem and were taken to Babylon as captives of the heathens.
Further, "as Jerusalem lay desolate celebrating Sabbath for full seven decades of
the captivity," as is stated in the Old Testament, clearly shows that no Israelites
were ever left behind there for the whole period. In the circumstance, it was left to
Ezra the scribe to collect from hearsay whatever bits and pieces of folklore that
remained with the Israelite community polluted by the Babylonian heathen culture,
faiths and worship over their two hundred year captivity, and produce a new
compilation of the lost Mosaic Law that had, long before the Babylonian holocaust
of Jerusalem, become corrupted due to "all the leading priests and people likewise
(of Israel) being unfaithful following all abominations of the nations" (Chron.
36:14). In this extremely difficult situation, it is not at all surprising that the new
Torah consisting of the "supposed-to-be - five books of-Moses (Pentateuch) and
the subsequent nine chapters up to Ezra compiled, perhaps, by Ezra himself (and
others) about 499-500 B.C.E. and later - contains too many repetitions as should be
normally expected in any such compilations from corrupted oral traditions that
through error transmission by mouth from decade to decade became polluted by
heathen superstitions and cultures predominated by worship of a plurality of gods
and goddesses in societies like the ones where the Israelis were forced to live as
abject slaves for twenty decades, away from any possibility of getting moral and
spiritual guidance on the lines of the original Law. A particular example is the first
book of Genesis, which cannot, from any spiritual consideration, be expected to
have emanated from a learned Rabbi, Ezra himself or anyone else, not to speak of
from All Knowing and Exalted God Almighty. This is for the reason that Genesis
and Exodus and the prophets of the Old Testament in particular are full of
expressions damaging the mighty position of the Almighty God, his pure angels
and prophets of exemplary character, such as to wit a few as below:
God telling a lie to Adam and Eve that "In the day you eat of it you shall die"
(Gen. 2:17); God resting on the seventh day, having finished with the creation in
six days as if he was tired or had nothing to do (Gen. 2:2); Adam and Eve hearing
the
sound
of
the
Lord
God
185
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
walking in the garden on a cool day (Gen. 3:8). "The sons of God saw that the
daughters of men were fair and they took to wife such of them as they chose ...
when the sons of God came into the daughters of men and they bore children to
them" (Gen. 6:2-4). ''When the Lord God smelled the pleasing odour" (Gen. 8:21);
and the Lord came down to see the city and tower which the sons of man had built"
(Gen. 11:15). Abraham the prophet (peace be on him) said to his wife, Sarah, to
say a lie) that she was his sister" (Gen. 12:12). The Lord God said. "I will go down
to see whether they have done altogether according to the outcry which has come
to me, and if not I will know'' (Gen. 18:21). The Angels ate the leavened bread
offered to them by Abraham" (Gen. 19:4). "Lot (the prophet) said to his people,
'Behold, I have two daughters who have not known man ... do them as you please'
" (Gen. 19:8). Lots daughters made their father drink wine at night and lay with
him in turn to preserve offspring through him and thus sons were born to both of
them (Gen. 19:32-36). "Abimelch, the king of Gerar, took Sarah, the wife of
Abraham (the prophet) (peace be on him) to sleep with him because Abraham
(peace be on him) said she was his sister ... but as a result of a dream when the
king knew that Sarah was the wife of prophet Abraham (peace be on him), the
former admonished Abraham (peace be on him) in the morning saying that he had
brought a sin to the king and the kingdom" (Gen. 20:1-11). Regarding Aaron, who
was not only made co-prophet with his prophet brother Moses (peace be on them),
but whose sons were made priests forever by God, there is an allegation against
him of making the golden calf and his association with its worship also, along with
the children of Israel (Exod. 32:2-6). Regarding the prophet King David (peace be
on him), there is an allegation that when he saw a beautiful girl taking a bath while
he was walking on the root of the king's palace, in spite of knowing that she was
the wife of another neighbour, David (peace be on him) took her and lay with her
(this apostate act against the Ten Commandment having been called the
purification of the woman); she conceived a child as the result and after her
husband was arranged to be killed by Joab, David (peace be on him) married her;
but this act of David (peace be on him) displeased God (II Sam.-11:2-27). About
the prophet king Solomon (peace be on him), it is stated that he had 700 wives and
princesses, and 300 concubines and that when he was old his wives turned away
his heart after other gods and that his heart was not perfect with his God as was the
heart of his father, David (peace be on him), because of having gone after
Ashtoreth; the goddess of Zidonians and after Milcom the abomination the
Ammonites. Solomon (peace be on him) is also stated to have not only built high
palaces for Chemosh, the abomination of Moab, in the hill before Jerusalem and
for
Molech,
186
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
the abomination of the children of Ammon, but also palaces for his foreign wives
that burnt incenses and sacrificed to their gods, and therefore God was angry with
Solomon (peace be on him). Because his heart was turned away from the Lord God
of Israel, who appeared to him twice and bad commanded concerning this thing
that he should not go after other gods, he did not keep what the Lord commanded
(I Kings 11:1-11). And the list goes on.
It is also not known whether the hooks written by Ezra were in the Hebrew or
Aramaic languages that were spoken by the Jews, by and large, on their return
from captivity. Ezra's version was that the very large majority of the Rabbis were
fond of keeping what knowledge and books each had as a well-guarded secret, and
it is no wonder that the originals of the compilations of Ezra are not now available.
It is said that Ezra had dictated ninety-four books but all but twenty-four of them
were kept secret! Further, Ezra himself is reported to have lamented that "the
world is shrouded in darkness, and its inhabitants are without light; for your Law
was destroyed in the fire" (2 Esdras 14:20-22), confirming that the original Torah
had been totally lost earlier. There is also not a single version of even Ezra's Torah
available in the original because today not a single agreed version of the Old
Testament in Hebrew or Aramaic that may be traced back to Ezra is available.
However, from the history of how the Bible came to us," as shown in the revised
standard version of the Bible edited by John Stirling in 1952, it is seen that the
earliest Greek Bible (Old Testament} was of the third century B.C.E. and that
before that the Bible remained as the Hebrew version, copied by the scribes on
scrolls down the centuries. But from which authorised Hebrew version this was
translated into Greek is not known. The legend says that the Septuagint, so-called
because it was composed by seventy or more scribes, was produced as a result of
the intense work of many hands over a period of more than a century. However for
the reason that the text of the Septuagint is chaotic and the confusion created as the
result of misreading the Hebrew text, as is evident in some of its passages,
complicates the problem when it is used as a guide to understand the Hebrew text,
quite many scholars doubt its reliability. Even as early as the destruction of
Jerusalem in 70 C.E. due to the difference both in Canon and text from the
accepted Hebrew versions, the Septuagint was unacceptable to the conservative
rabbis. Thus about 140 C.E., even among the Greek Jews, the more liberal
translation of Acquila had, to some extent, replaced the Septuagint. Two Latin
translations of the Bible, one made for Italian use and another for North African
use, became popular during the second and third centuries C.E. Having become
displeased with the confusion created by the two Latin versions as well as others
available
187
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
then, Pope Damasus I authorised Saint Jerome in the fourth century to edit a new
authorised version of the Bible to be known as "The Vulgate," which took nearly
two decades to complete. It was published in 404 C.E. Despite the endorsement of
Saint Augustine and others, the Vulgate and the Latin versions did not receive
immediate support of all, mainly because of differences between the Vulgate and
Latin versions. The council of Trent, however, adopted the Vulgate as the standard
Latin version of the Bible. Its new edition, prepared in 1590, was revised and
issued in 1592. As the result of its re-edition by an international commission
ordered by Pope Pius X in 1907, the first volume of the "New Vulgate" appeared
in 1926. The first English version of the whole Bible, however, had been published
by Miles Coverdale in the year 1535. The New Testament alone had been
published earlier in English in the year 1526 by William Tyndale. The Great Bible
that the official commission prepared was adopted by leaders of the state and
church and published in 1539, to be enforced as the only official and permissible
version of the scripture. However, as other versions still remained popular, another
revised version of the Great Bible under the title of the "Bishop's Bible" was
published in 1568; this too could not become popular. It was in 1611 that another
authorised English translation known as the "King James Bible" was published.
This again had to be revised as the result of criticism and yet another new version
of it was issued about 1885, followed by the American Standard Version of 1901.
The American Standard Version too was more drastically revised in the standard
version of the New Testament in 1946, the Old Testament in 1952 and the
Apocrypha in 1957 C.E. Later, the entirely new translation of the New Testament
that appeared in 1961 C.E., as well as the Old Testament and the Apocrypha that
appeared in 1970, were the product of the work of a commission of scholars from
Great Britain who started the work in the year 1947. Thus, from the history of the
Bible, both the Old and the New Testaments, it appears that during the last twenty
centuries or so not even one of the translations has been able to receive unanimous
approval of all sections of the churches. As far as the original Old Testament is
concerned, it has already been seen that the Torah had been lost much earlier than
the era of David (peace be upon) and what was relied upon later to be the lost
Book of the Law was the one that was supposed to have been found in the temple
at Jerusalem by Hilkiah the priest about 600 to 700 B.C.E. during the reign of
Josiah and confirmed as the words of God by a prophetess through mediation with
God! Since then, even this was lost in the fire during the destruction spree of the
Chaldeans in Jerusalem under the orders of their king. Thus the new Torah of Ezra
188
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
189
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Chapter 10
Shintoism
It appears that Shintoism in Japan is at least as old as Christianity about twenty
centuries. Shinto is the Sino-Japanese reading of Kami-no-Michi, meaning "The
Way of the Kami"' or "The Way of the Gods." It is the way of life that has
developed around the beliefs and ceremonies associated with the worship. or the
old, indigenous deities of Japan. The name bas probably come into use consequent
with the introduction of Buddhism into Japan about the sixth century C,E. in order
to distinguish the indigenous eult from Buddhism. In Japan the "Affairs of
Worship" (Matsuri-goto) had been in vogue from ancient times to indicate festivals
and ceremonies dedicated to Japanese deities. Culture and religion being the same
for the people, ceremonies before the gods as well as w cover matters of state were
the same. After the restoration of the emperor in the year 1868 C.E. this ancient
union of cultureand state was particularly revived and in this context the shrines of
Shinto were projected as the prime agencies for dramatising, celebrating and
supporting the major interests of the national life in Japan.
Existence of Shinto today is in two forms: Shrine shinto (Jinja Shinto),
formerly State Shinto (Kokka shinto), and a peoples' Shinto (Shuha Shinto),
consisting of over one-hundred sects. Whlle the former has shrines called Jinja,
varying in size from small wayside temples dedicated to guardian spirits of local
fields and families to large ones commemorating rulers and heroes who died for
the state or the sovereign, the Shuba temples (Kyokai) of the latter are just small
and ordinary places of sectarian worship.
Although Japan has no state religion today, all religions being treated equally,
from 1940 onwards as a result of placing all Shinto shrines under the bureau of
shrines of the Japanese government, the state Shinto shrines had received some
amount of state patronage. The sectarian Shinto consists of soine with the
Confucian influ.ence, others with the pure Shito beliefs and ceremonies, and some
with either extraordinary emphasia on purification rites or with the cults of
mountain worship or faith-healing. Mount Fuji, which is known as Fujiyama to the
world,
is
respected
and
revered
by
all
Japanese
not
190
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
only as a divine object but as a national and state symbol of Japan because of the
reciprocity between the state and the national culture. Since the Second World War
things have changed drastically with no state support to Shintoism by the total
renunciation of divllrity by the .Tapaneae emperor in the year 1946. Earlier, there
were roughly fortyeightmHlion adherents of Shiptoism confined to Japan alone
who believed that their emperor was holy, being the descendant of the sun god.
Starting with nature worship by the agriculturists, there is no limit to the
number and type of deities in the Shinto cult. "The Kamis" are the divine
personages of the world of nature worshipped as deities, gods and goddesses,
which includea anything such as the sky, the earth, the sun, the moon, the storm~
the trees, the springs, the rivers, the seas, the rocks, the mountains, growth,
fertility, the stars, the planets, any mysterious appearance, and so on. In the older
Shinto eras it is said that there were "Yao-yorodzu-No-Kami," with meant ''the
eight hundred myriads of gods." In modem times, during the post-World War eras,
in order to foster the sentiment of reverence to the imperial family aa a basis for
national unification, the world of the gods of Shinto was further enlarged to
include the spirits of kings as well as heroes and warriors who died in wars and
military service of the sovereign and the country as exhibited by the national
Yasukuni shrine on the Kundan Hill in Tokyo purported to give sanctuary to the
spirits of those who lost their lives during the recent wars and who are supposd to
have been rewarded with elevation to the ranks of the immortal hosts from the
world of spirits who are believed by the Shinto to be guarding the destiny of the
nation.
With the threat of erosion of the Shinto culture by Buddhism, a Japanese
revival of Shintoism on more solid and active foundations became necessary for
the strengthening of the national and cultural unity of the Japanese people.
Accordingly, during the period of the Tokugawa dynasty, the scholars of the
sixteenth to the eighteenth centuries C.E.developed a theory that "the sun goddess
Ameta-rassu-Omi-Kami was the first founder of the Japanese imperial genealogy
that the divinely established sovereignty thus rests in the imperial succession
unbroken from the ancient ages destined to rule Japan eternally, and that because
of this emotional identification with the Great Kami of the ancient age of the gods,
the Japanese is braver, more virtuous, and more intelligent than all other races."
Thus, they developed the doctrine that the emperor descended from the gods is
also ordained by the will of the gods to extend his sway over the entire world and
that the Japanese race is divinely endowed to do what is morally right without the
need
of
any
external
precepts
that
the
less
191
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
favoured peoples are obliged to depend upon. Until the defeat of the Japanese in
the Second World War, this doctrine prevailed in Japan. This doctrine based on a
racial psychology, believed to be divine, had become acceptable to the Japanese
people as a national faith and it guided the sentiments, institutions, rituals, system
of morals, thoughts and outlooks of the race as a whole having been projected as
"Yamato Damashii" (The Yamato Soul) and "Bushido" (The Way of the Warrior),
and expressed in the current literature as "The Nippon Seshin" or "The Japanese
Spirit." This notion of ''The Japanese Spirit" and firm belief in the doctrine that as
children of gods with the oldest imperial line begun from the ancient time of gods,
still unbroken, the Japanese race was assigned with a divine mission to save the
rest of the world backed and reassured by intense government propaganda, was
respo:nsible to make the Japanese people a powerful military state and war
machine with extraordinary courage and devotion in battle, orderliness, discipline
and loyalty, in active colls.boration with the Nazis who too had a similar notion of
Aryan race superiority.
However, the defeat of the Japanese and the Nazis in the Second World War
helped to remove the above myth from their minds for the good of themselves as
well as the rest of the world consequently, the Shinto ideology transformed into
internationalism not only to win the support of the world society, bu.t also to make
it a religion of good will. Accordingly, the unified rituals that were prepared by the
National Shrine Association of Japan in the year 1946 for use in all Shinto Shrines
contained prayers for world peace and brotherhood. Naturally too, the vast
msjority of the Japanese people subscribed to this new idea, which is still respected
by them. Simultaneously, the prominence of the sun goddess and the associated
grand shrine of Ise (Amaterasu-Omi- Kami) was preserved as the Japanese god,
again according to the Japanese tradition, to continue the links that the Japanese
people had since older times when the same Shintoism with different ideology
from the present had been the state religion of Japan.
192
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Chapter 11
Sikhism
Jaidev, the composer of Geetha Govind, a Hindu philosopher and thinker, had
taught in the eleventh century C.E. that the practice of Hindu yoga was useless as a
replacement of the worship of God in thoughts and words. Later, influenced by
Islam, the religion of the Moghul rulers of India, Kabir, the Indian mystic poet
philosopher (1440-1518) had also denounced the idolatry and ritualism advocated
by the Hindu scriptural philosophy where by worship of, and offering to,
thousands of gods and goddesses had become synonymous with the very way of
Hindu life of his times. At the close of the same century Ramanand also had tried
to free his followers from the curse of the Hindu caste system. As has been already
pointed out earlier under Hinduism, many a similar renaissance and confirmation
movements had been started by many Hindu thinkers and philosophers since the
seventh century C.E., which had not been a matter of simple coincidence of events
only. In fact, this was the century when the religion of Islam was introduced to the
world as a complete way of life confirming the earlier monotheistic religions of
Judaism and Christianity as the forerunners establishing the supremacy of the only
One God as well as the undeniable internationalism of man wherever he be in the
world.
Earlier, Christianity had already been introduced into Hindu India and now
account of the rational as well as lofty views of Christianity and Islam on God,
man and the universe as well as through the life styles of the evangelists of the two
religions they had already started to make their impacts on the religious and
cultural life of India through large-scale conversions from Hinduism to the two
new religions. Naturally, not knowing any better philosophy than the one
highlighted through the Dravidian-Aryan cultures developed over many thousands
of years based on the Vedic as well as subsequent literature, the strategy of the
Hindu thinkers and philosophers had to soon change from their earlier efforts of
strengthening the belief of the Hindu devotee through intense ritualisms such as
Shakti, Bhakti and other cults that concentrated on exhibition of the mythical
strength and prowess of the concerned Hindu god to a cleansing campaign, and the
Shudhi
Movement,
193
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
aimed at not only preventing Hindus from converting to other creeds but also to
lure those Hindus who had already converted to other religions back into the folds
of Hinduism itself at all costs. Still, the rupture of the dam could not be mended
because the velocity of the current of the new movements, particularly that of
Islam, was too great to be stopped. Together with the stresses and strains
introduced during the Muslim conquests of India, when Islam had become a strong
minority religion of India with large-scale conversions taking place everywhere, it
became very essential in the interest of at least making Hindu culture not obsolete
altogether, to interpret its philosophy to suit the changed situation. But this was not
easy because Hindu philosophies of the scriptures had made a deep impression on
the cultural life of the masses on the one hand and the custodians of the scripture,
the upper castes, particularly the Brahmanas, were in no mood to make any
concession on the other. Therefore, at the close of the fifteenth century C.E., yet
another reformer, Guru Nanak, a Hindu, introduced his new religion of Sikhism so
as to rid Hinduism of not only the vested priesthood, but also of its centuries-old
disadvantages such as belief in plurality of gods, idol worship, ritualism, caste
distinction, rebirth cycle and so on, in the name of introducing a neo-religion,
which, according to its founder, was based on a mixture of the best of the two
philosophies of Islam and Hinduism with the idea of bringing the two religions
together.
Guru Nanak, the founder of the Sikh cult and a contemporary of Martin
Luther, born in the year 1469 C.E., was a stem monotheist. The Sikh tradition, in
the context of the strong hold of Hindu philosophy even on this faith, attributes
that he was a reincarnation of the Hindu Upanishad patron Kshatriya King Janaka
of Videhas. Born a Hindu, but brought up under close association with Muslims;
Guru (teacher) Nanak was influenced by the teachings of Kabir and other Muslim
Soofis. Having got fed up with the concepts of the numerous gods and the caste
system advocated by Hinduism on the one hand and the rivalry as well as the acute
misunderstanding between the opposing Hindu polytheism and Muslim
monotheism on the other, Nanak launched his new religion, which was
monotheistic in concept with the best of intentions, perhaps. Accordingly, he
taught to his followers the worthlessness of some of the important vestments of the
Hindu faith such as idol worship, renunciation, ostentatious prayers to gods and
deities in preference to the One God, penances, pilgrimages, caste system and the
like. He brought down the impregnable wall of caste segregation enjoined by the
Hindu Vedas and scriptures by declaring that all men being equal before God,
everyone
had
the
right
to
seek
194
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
knowledge, irrespective of the caste he was born to by the act of nature. His creed
was thus kept open to persons of all denominations without any caste distinction
being practiced. There is no doubt that the two main factors that might have
contributed to his new approach were that while born and brought up in a
segregated Hindu caste environment and worship of idols, he lived his early life, in
direct contrast, with his Muslim benefactors whereby he must have been impressed
by the loftier ideas and practices that were found in Islam on these and many other
aspects of life.
It has already been said before that in approach Guru Nanak had the basic
fervour to reform Hinduism in an era when it had come into direct confrontation
with the much more appealing philosophy of Islam that had been introduced into
the Punjab area of India by the Moghul and Afghan Muslim rulers. However, later
his thoughts got realigned also towards bringing about a rapprochement between
the two religions. However, the course of history in India has amply proven how
much his ideas did miss the marks from the facts that soon the followers of the
Sikh cult turned against not only Muslims but also against Hindus themselves
during recent years.
Belief in One God eschewing idols; leading a clean life; prayers through
mediation of God through chanting His name (nam) for enabling the soul to pass
through different life cycles until it unites with God; a casteless one society and
abstention from intoxicants are the essentials of Guru Nanak's Sikh cult. Before his
death in the year 1539, Nanak had designated his successor, another kshatriya by
the name Lehna, known as Guru Angad. The credit for the inception of the holy
book of Sikhs, The Granth Sahib, goes to Guru Angad. The Granth Sahib is not a
revelation of God, but a compilation of what Lehna had heard from the Guru,
adding his own thoughts and reflections to it. The invention of the Sikh language,
Gurumukhi (teacher's language), with modified Sharada script to mark the sacred
character of the religious book is also credited to Guru Angad. Kshatriya Amar
Das, who succeeded Guru Angad, further reformed the cult by separation of The
Udasi Order founded by Guru Nanak's own son, Shri Chand, from laity,
denunciation of Sati (ceremonial burning of one's wife in the funeral pyre of the
dead husband) of the Hindus and by stressing Nanak's condemnation of the Hindu
caste system by making all Sikhs eat together. Guru Ramdas who succeeded Amar
Das was responsible for building the Golden Temple at Amritsar in 1579 on the
piece of land that was granted to Sikhs for the purpose by the Moghul Muslim
Emperor Akbar.
During the seventeenth century C.E., the tenth and last Guru,
195
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Govind Rai, or Govind Singh, further remodelled the Sikh cult under the aegis of
the Sikh Organisation that was named ''The Khalsa" (pure), introducing the Sikh
initiation rite (Pahul) for admittance into a militant Sikh Order. The five symbols
of the Sikh cult found todaywhich are Kesh (the unshorn hair), Katcha (the
drawers up to the knee), Kada (the iron bangle), Kripan (the small dagger), and
Kanga (the comb), known as the "Five Ks"were also introduced as compulsory
for all Sikhs thereafter. Although spiritual values are attributed to each of the five
symbols, the fact remains as accepted that these made the Sikhs a martial race with
specific identity to fight at a moment's notice. As a corollary to these changes,
meat and liquor were permitted to all Sikhs as for the warriors in contrast to the
order of the founder, Nanak, while tobacco, being a narcotic, was prohibited. A
communion (Kara Prasad) of flour mixed with butter and sugar eaten together
irrespective of caste distinction was also instituted by Guru Govind Singh at
congregations.
The effort of Govind Singh had been to evolve a politico-religious entity to
fight against the Muslim (Moghul) power in India. Before his assassination in the
year 1708, Govind Singh terminated the lineage of Gurus, vesting the future
Guruship in '"The Granth Sahib" as the representative of God on earth to guide the
Sikhs. Thenceforth, the Sikh cult was transformed into a militant theocracy.
Growth of Sikh political power transforming this religious sect into a military
organisation inspired with severe hatred towards Muslims, had started with the
death of Emperor Akabar in the year 1605. Banda Bairagi, who had proclaimed
himself as the eleventh Guru, of the Sikhs, had even formed an army to fight the
Moghuls and had been taking allegiance of Hindu Hill rulers until his death in the
early seventeenth century. By the year 1767, the Sikhs were in control of the large
tract of land between the rivers Indus and Jamuna. However, in the year 1808,
Ranjit Singh annexed the entire Sikh territory, setting up a monarchy under him up
to Peshawar, including the territory of Kashmir. After the death of Ranjit Singh in
the year 1839, lawlessness developed and the political power passed to the army of
the Sikh Khalsa.
In the 19th century, although the Sikhs continued to maintain their separate
identity, they remained, by and large, a collection of Hinduised sects. After the
death of Ranjit Singh, the Sikhs fought a couple of times with the British.
However, after their final defeat in Gujrat, which led to their ultimate surrender in
the year 1849, and in particular after the Indian Mutiny of 1857, Sikhism revived
again as a religious force rather than a militarist, stimulating anti-Muslim feelings.
Thenceforth, the Granth Sahib again became their Guru. The
196
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
book of common prayer, the Panch Granthi, including the five poems from the
Granth, was recited daily by the Khalsa Sikhs, the followers of Guru Govind
Singh. However, the Sikh ascetics also used to make pilgrimages to the Hindu
temples. The Khalsa College of Amritsar was founded and the Khalsa Diwan
started making grants to Sikh schools and Sikh societies. The laity also had started
creeping into Sikh sects. In later years sectarian conflicts prevailed within the Sikh
community, necessitating the intervention of the British authority in India as well
as M.K. Gandhi for the reestablishment of order within the community. Thereafter,
the Sikhs started joining the British Indian armed forces as well as the defence and
the civil services of India in large numbers. During the partitioning of India into
Bharat and Pakistan, the strong position of the Sikhs in the armed forces and civil
service of India in general and in the Punjab in particular as well as the antiMuslim feeling of the Sikh community were responsible for the unfortunate mass
massacres of Muslims and Hindus in many a northern Indian city where the Sikhs
as a whole aligned themselves against the Muslims.
Thus, although it may appear that the Sikh cult was an effort on the part of its
founder to bring about a rapprochement between Hindus and Muslims of India, in
fact it turned out to be a martial regrouping of thought and action of the Hindu
society aimed at its political and social consolidation against erosion by more
dynamic religions of India, particularly Islam. With no concrete new philosophy
regarding the life after death except the same old Hindu doctrine of transmigration
of souls until the ultimate reunion with god, the new movement of Sikhism too did
not fulfil the dynamic need of the modern man who is in search of a balanced,
logical and meaningful philosophy as well as way of life blending his materialistic
existence in the world with his life after death.
How strange indeed it is that in in spite of what is found in "Guru Janam
Sakhi Kalan Bhai Bala," having seen the Torah, Zabur, Injeel and Quraan
carefully, Guru Nanak said that he had found the code of complete guidance for
man in Quraan alone, that if there is any book of faith it is Quraan, and that,
Quraan being the book of complete guidance, it should be believed and followed;
however, he preferred to press forward his new Sikh religion rather than gracefully
accept Islam, which is the religion advocated by the very Quraan itself!
197
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Chapter 12
Taoism
Founded by Lao-Tzu in China, and more or less akin to Confucianism, Taoism,
in two distinct movements, one with a philosophy called Taochia (The Taoist
School) and the other called Tao-chiao (The Taoist Religion) has been part of the
Chinese philosophy and life for over 2000 years. The origin of "Tao-te-ching,"
or the Tao philosophy, is obscure. Tao, meaning way in the Chinese language, is
a key word in Confucianism too. It appears that the Taoist philosophy developed
about the fourth century B.C.E. in two channelsTao-te-ching and ''Chuangtzu."
Tao-te-ching
The essence of Tao-te-ching is naturalism through Wu-Wei (inaction), which
means taking no unnatural action. Everything should take place spontaneously,
and one should assist and support all things in their natural state and change
spontaneously too. Without leaving anything undone, the Tao undertakes no
activity for its own purpose. Actually, it shapes into production and rearing of
things without taking possession of them and doing work without taking pride in
its performance. Truly, a government according to the Tao philosophy should
function spontaneously without there being any law, regulations or ceremonies
and the best government therefore should be one that is not even noticed by the
people. Thus, while Tao-te-ching strongly condemns not only artificalities and
formalities, but also war, taxation, punishment, superficial knowledge and
conventional morality, it also promotes the spirit of rebellion.
While emphasising nonbeing, it also states that before coming into
existence, there is a state of nonbeing. Coming from the same source and
appearing in different names, it confirms states of both eternal being and eternal
nonbeing. Thus, the Tao is "the principle of existence", "the source of heaven
and earth" and "the mother of all things". While producing all things, the Tao
contains
them
in
a
harmonious
whole.
198
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
To know this harmony is called ''the eternal" and knowing "the eternal," is
called ''insight."
Comparison of the natural way is made with the ways of water, the female
and the infant, the latter are considered as the weak. Water, although it is soft
and weak, there is nothing better for attacking hard and strong things. While the
weak has been glorified, simplicity is stressed. A simple life has been defined as
one that discards profit, abandons cleverness, eliminates selfishness and reduces
desires. It is a life that is bright as light, but does not dazzle, repays evil with
kindness, perfection that seems to be incomplete, fullness that seems to be
empty, unity, contentment, tranquility, constancy, enlightment, long life, and so
on.
Chuang-tzu
According to this, nature is the state of incessant and spontaneous selftransformation without any Lord to direct it. ''The ideal pure man" is a
companion of nature, aiding it but not trying to replace its ways by his own, his
goal being absolute spiritual freedom and peace to be achieved through Wu-wei
(inaction), adopting his own true nature and nourishing it with the process of
nature, thereby gaining "Great Wisdom," which makes no distinctions, entertains
no subjectivity and abides by the universal. All being embraced in one, to the
Taoist things and opinions are all equal because everything is relative and
concerned mutually with each other. This unity makes him to "roam with the
Creator," making friendship with life and death. There is some amount of
mysticism, inaction and fatalism in the teaching, but the ultimate aim is the
preservation of natural originality and absolute spiritual freedom of the
individual.
In the fourth and fifth centuries B.C.E., the cult of life preservation had
become so strong in China that Yunchu, a Tao reformist, would not even enter
an endangered city or exchange even a bit of his own sacrifice for anything in
return. The neo-Taoism that developed during the third and fourth centuries
B.C.E. also continued to remain influenced in one form or other by the basic
doctrine of Wu-Wei. Nevertheless, with the advent of Buddhism into China, the
two movements started to influence each other. Along with the introduction of
Taoism in China, another movement aimed at making it a religious cult had also
been started by priest-magicians offering divination and magic for acquiring
inward power, youth restoration, superhuman power and immortality on earth.
During the time of Chang-liu, a religious leader who was famous for healing the
sick
organised
this
movement
in
about
143
C.E.
199
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
200
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
gold are attempted and practiced by the Tao society. Nevertheless, the process of
alchemic investigations and development of medicines led to many scientific
discoveries that did benefit contemporary Europe and the West. In the field of
superstition, Taoist harbours many, such as geomancy, divination, fortune telling
and the extensive use of charms and potions for any purpose.
The sects have their own temples, images of worship, clergy and even
canons. In North China, the Northern School called the "Complete Unity Sect"
prevails around the prime white temple of Peking as the chief shrine
emphasising man's lifeman's vital force, which according to them may be
prolonged with proper diet and medicine. Their priests renounce home, are
vegetarians and live in temples. The Southern School, called the "True Unity
Sect," emphasises man's nature, which is his true self or spirit, and use of charms
as well as magic to preserve it. Their priests marry, live at home and regard the
Heavenly Teacher, who lived in the Dragon and Tiger Mountains in central
China, as their head.
In practice, it is seen that the mix-up of Confucianism, Buddhism,
Shintoism and Taoism in one way or other has resulted in evolution of almost a
common way of life for the peoples of the Chinese peninsula, the Far East and
Japan.
201
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Chapter 13
Zoroastrianism
History of the People
Zarathustra in old Persian, Zartosh in new Persian and Zoroaster in Greek, was the
founder of the religion of the people known as Zoroastrians, who had flourished in
old Iran from about the seventh century B.C.E to about tenth century C.E., but now
a small minority of people numbering about 200,000 and found mostly in the port
cities of Bombay of India and Karachi of Pakistan, and called Parsees, a named
derived from their ancestral home, Persia. An affluent and peaceful people known
for their well-knit community.life and philanthrophy, exhibitied through their
donations for building trust educational institutions, hospitals and public parks in
the two cities, mainly during the British rule of India, which stand much more
prominently than the small size of the community's population, Parsees had started
their migration from the area called Gujrat in the Bombsay state of western India
during the 10th century C.E. when Islam had become the predominant religion of
Persia replacing the two earlier ones of the country, namely, the old Iranian
polytheistic cults and the dualist cult of Zoroaster. During the early days of their
migration to India, the Parsees had been an agricultural and cattle breeding
community, but during the process of their initial social and economic integration
with India, had taken to the local Hindu ways of dressing. However, soon on
attainment of prosperity, they concentrated their efforts on commerce, industry and
real estate development in the two prime port cities of Bombay and Karachi.
During the subsequent years of British rule of lndia, they took to the English way
of dressing. During the early part of this century, Parsees occupied prominent
positions as elites in commerce, industry, real estate, local self government as well
as in establishing charitable institutions in the two cities where quite a number of
schools, parks and hospitals may be seen today bearing the name of their
illustrious Parsee donors.
202
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Zoroaster's Life
Zoroaster was born somewhere in the agricultural area, perhaps of northwest
Iran, where animal husbandry and farming may have been the main profession of
the people. Although the era of Zoroaster as well as the exact place of his birth are
obscure, it is conjecturally placed between 600 and 700 B.C.E. The Parsee
tradition states that he lived 258 years before Alexander, the Persians locating him
to the days of Hystapes. Whether Hystapes was the father of Darius or some other
is also not known from any records, although it is clear that Darius and his
successors were Zoroastrians. Zoroaster, who is attributed to have been, probably,
the legendary founder of the "wisdom of Magic" and practices of occult science
that prevailed for quite many centuries from 300 B.C.E.to 300 C.E. in the Middle
East and Greece, is mentioned by Pluto as the son of Oromazdes. The early
Christians thought that Zoroaster was the prophet Ezekiel mentioned in the Jewish
Torah. Different scholars, however, assign him to different regions as far as his
place of origin is concerned. The Avesta says that he was born at Airyanem Vaejo
on the river Daitya, the old sacred country of gods. The Venda says that it was at
his father's place on the river Dareja; in Bandahish it is at Airan Vej on the river
Daitya, and in Yasna it is at Ragha. The thirteenth chapter of Spend Nask devoted
to Zoroaster's life, is, however; lost. Nevertheless, the seventh book of Dinkard
which is stated to have been written in the ninth century C.E., and containing
biographies supposed to have been based on the lost thirteenth chapter of Avesta,
the Shahnama and the thirteenth century Zardusht-Nama speak of wonders,
fabulous stories and even miracles associated with the life of Zoroaster.
Zardusht Nama says that Zoroaster was born Iaughing, unlike the traditionally
crying newborn children, that he lived in the jungle on cheese, that he was
supposed to have had communication with the celestial beings and that he was an
admirer of the Greek deity Zeus to such an extent that he disappeared into the
forest, out of love for wisdom and righteousness, to live in solitude upon a
mountain which, when it caught fire, he escaped unscathed to speak to the people.
It is stated in the later Avesta that Zoroaster was a half-mythical person, the last in
a series of East Iranian legendary heroes. However, in Gathas he is depicted as a
historical personage whose successsie attributed to his power and good example
and that he was the pioneer of the doctrine revealed by Ormazd.
Born and brought up in a region of animal husbandry and farming
203
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
204
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
the deities presiding over the thirty days of the month, the Yashts is a collection of
hymns that are supplications to be addressed by devotees to each of the twenty-one
deities such as Mithra, Anahita, or Verithrughna and so on. The Hadhoxt Nask
(sayings) describe the fate of the soul after death and the Khurda or small Avesta
contains minor texts. The Denkart (the Acts of Religion) written in Pahlavi
language of the Sasasin period of Zoroastrian renaissance during the ninth century
C.E. under the Muslim influence in Persia, cites a list of twenty-one books of the
Nasks which were available then, but only one of which, found in Vendidad,
survived the march of time. The Gathas (old hymns) are stated to have been the
speech that Zoroaster himself had delivered to the people at the age of forty during
and after the time he appeared to promulgate his new philosophy and religion at
the court of King Vishtapa. The Gathas depict Zoroaster as a just man, firm in
realism, relying and trusting in God alone under the protection of the angels. It
appears as if he was upset not only by external opposition to his doctrine from the
masses, but also on account of disbeliefs and insufficient support from his own
adherents as well as, perhaps, his own misgivings as to the truth and ultimate
victory of his doctrine. The Gathas contain solemn prophesies, assertions and
admonitions with hidden and doubtful meanings directed towards princes and one's
own disciples. These are in the form of dialogues with God and angels invoking
them as witnesses with indirect references to one's own person.
The Gathas emphasised in terms of divine commands, devotion to Ormazd,
good deeds and bad deeds, avoiding the ways of the devil, the protection of cows
(maybe derived from the Aryan Vedic concept that later became an inseparable act
of devotion of the Indian Hindu Brahman religion) and the purity of soul as well as
the body, but no ceremonial worship. While it shows Zoroaster's convictions of the
ultimate triumph of the good, it also contains revelations on the state of things to
come in the future, of happiness or sorrow, of souls, rewards of the believers as
well as warnings to the unbelievers. As shown by the Gathas, Zoroaster believed
that the arrival of a prophet was for a special cause and purpose and that the
"Opportune time" and "The Kingdom of God" were both at hand. Further, the
hymns visualise the ultimate victory of the faithful very soon over the evil forces
with the intervention of Ormazd, followed by a general ordeal and establishment
under a unified world kingdom in the eternal fellowship of Ormazd and his angels,
of a millenium where the sun will always shine, all the faithful live happily without
interference from any evil forces, each believer having been presented with the
bounties of the Vohu Maro (good sense) and an inexhaustible cow.
205
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Almost every hymn of the Gathas has some mention or other of the fate
awaiting man after death, which is depicted as a continuity of the life of this world.
The soul passes over the bridge of the Requited (Cinvat), looked upon with fear
and anxiety by every soul because, on passing of judgment by Ahura Mazda, the
good only enter the everlasting kingdom of bliss and light (heaven) and the bad
enter the everlasting regions of darkness and horror (hell). Zoroaster, perhaps, was
a devotee of Mazda (the Wise), one of the Ahuras, because of his mention of
Mazda along with the Ahuras in one of his hymns in the Gatha. Zoroaster used to
invoke saviours who would come to the world like the dawn of new days and he
hoped himself to be one of them. Therefore after his death the belief in the arrival
of saviours developed in Zoroastrianism as well as the expectation of the return of
Zoroaster, if not personally, then in the shape of his three sons every thousand
years after his semen, the last of whom having been named "Astavat Erat" (the
Justice Incarnate), or the "Saoshyans" (The Saviour).
206
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
rian ethics, through consciousness. The Gatha projection is more biased towards
the Ahura Mazda than to the evil spirit. To the good Zoroastrian, Ormazd is the
only God and Lord depicted as the ideal figure of a benevolent Oriental king with
angels attending on him being the personifications of ethical values, depicted as
Amesha-Spentas (Immortal Holy Ones), serving as creatures, instruments,
attendants and servants, which are:
Vohu Mana (good sense);
Ashem (the genius of truth, right, law and rule);
Khshathrem or Khshathrem Vairum (the power and kingdom of Onnazd
which is yet to be manifested in all its majesty);
Armaiti (Due reverence for the divine daughter of Ormazd, Verecundia,
regarded as having her abode somewhere on earth);
Haurvatat(Perfection);
Ameretat (Immortality);
Geush Urvan (the genius and defender of animals); and
Sarosha (the genius of obedience).
The entire activity oftbe world is in fact a fight between the two opposing
forces of Ahriman and Ahura Mazda. Man having been created by Ormazd neutral,
giving him freedom of choice and action, and the soul being the object of this fight
between good and bad, he naturally has to face the consequences of his actions
before Ormazd either way. True confession of faith, good deeds, words and
thought, can keep man on the track of Ahura Mazda while the opposite attaches
him to the ways of Ahriman.
207
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
the only God, although depicting a desire for strong monotheism, however, not
only dualism but pantheistic polytheism is also exhibited in the very doctrine of
Zoroaster as depicted through Ahriman, Ahura Mazda (both being of equal power)
and Amesha Spentas.
The old Iranian folk religion had some similarities between the Aryan Vedic
religion. This was because of the fact that the Aryan invasion of the Indus-Ganges
plains was preceded by a good period ofnsojourn by Aryans in Iran. Zoroaster's
was a new religion that has come out of the old Iranian cults with some diversities.
The evil spirit called "Daeva" in the Avesta of Zoroastrianism and "Div" in modern
Persia, is the term used to represent a good spirit or one of the many gods in Vedic
terminology. On the other hand, while the term "Ashura?" is a Vedic term to
represent an evil spirit in Vedic Hinduism, the corresponding term "Ahura," used
in the old Iranian cult and in Zoroastrianism, is used for a good-spirit. Zoroaster,
however, elevated the term Ahura to denote "the concentrated whole of the one
divine character," designating it as Mazdao (the wise) and pulled down the concept
of Daeva to represent devils or evil and malicious forces and spirit. To him,''the
wise Lord," originally "Ahura Mazdao," which later became "Ormazd," is the
primeval spiritual being, "the all father who was existent before even the world
arose, and from whom the world emnated and whose courses are governed by his
foreseeing eye". His guiding spirit is thus the "Holy Spirit," which, though it wills
the good, yet is not free being restricted in its temporal sphere of action by its own
twin brother, the Evil Spirit" (Angromainush Ahriman), who, in the beginning,
was banished by the Good Spirit through the famous ban found in Yasna, and since
then drags on his exjstence in the darkness of hell. However, according to the
outlook of the Gathas, the Supreme Ormazd is above the Good Spirit Mazda and
the Evil Spirit Ahriman, the latter two being the two opposing forces in the world.
Later, the Evil Spirit and the Surpreme Ormazd are made equivalent to each other,
with the slogan, ''Here Ormazd and there Ahriman, The Daevas," who are heldin
high esteem as the perfect and definite gods and worshipped as idols by the old
popular Iranian cults, are however, not only considered by Zoroaster as the
corrupted children Ahriman, devils and enemies of mankind, but also as spurious
and their devotees, as idolators and misguided.
208
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
verse and the dualistic principle were focussed on monotheism, for the reason that
his own concepts appear as dubious and obscure with contradictions such as the
acceptance of Mithra, the several Ashura Spentas considered as personifications of
Ahura Mazda and the dualistic concept of the Good and Evil Spirit of the
monotheistic God that subsequently becmne two powerful contesting gods, and so
on, create such an uncongrous spiritual philosophy that no wonder that soon after
him, polytheistic practices of deity devotion crept into the life of his followers.
The philosophy contains two aspects, the life on the earth and the life after
death, the latter being a continuation as the result of the former adjudged in the
heaven by a court of reckoning, "Aka," probably by Rashnu (the genius of justice)
and Mithra on the basis of a "book of life," the final judgment being dependent on
the arithmetical balance sheet of good and evil actions committed in the worldly
life by each individual. Although Zoroaster's philosophy had no mention of
redemption from the sins, bad deeds or sins washed out as the result of repentance
was included in the philosophy later. An accounting bridge, Cinvato Pereto, lying
on the way to heaven (Garo Damana) where all arrive after death and where on
being sorted out after the accounting, each goes either to heaven or hell forever,
according to good or bad respectively on the basis of the final balance sheet. In the
case of a tie, however, the soul is kept in an intermediary stage of existence called
"Hamestakeans" for a final decision only at the last judgment. The course of law
may be reversed neither by sacrifice nor even by the grace of God.
The later Avesta initiation of the order of priesthood (Athravano), the fire
temple and the deification of Mithra as well as the variety of angels such as
victory, Verethraghna, Anahita, the goddess ofwater, Sirius and other planets and
stars, which are invoked by Zoroatrian for special purposes, are all innovations
introduced after Zoroaster. In the new Zoroastrian eschatology, the end of the
world is expected 3000 years after Zoroaster when a new Soshyant will be born of
the seed of Zoroaster, the dead brought to life and the incorruptible world begun,
the last of this eschatology being slightly at variance with the idea contained in the
earlier philosophy on the disposal of the souls of the dead as soon as they reach the
bridge of Requiter, explained earlier. Also, in the later Avesta, the gods that
Zoroaster eschewed and even ignored, such as Mithra, Airyaman (a replacement of
Sraosha), Analuta., Apam Napat, Verethraghna Vayu and so on, all reemerged in
the cult. Thus the many gods under Supreme Ahura Mazda (Ahura Mazda) rule the
post-Zoroaster creed. Later, even the Bounteous Spirit got submerged in Aura
Mazda; according to the Yasht, the two spirits fought each other; according to the
Videvdat,
Ahura
Mazda
and
the
209
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
destructive spirit opposed each other creating the good and bad thing respectively.
Thus, on the face of so many inconsistencies in beliefs Ahura Mazda could not be
considered as the father of the twin spirits being faced as equals opposing each
other, one being god and the other anti-god. This started the degeneration of
Zoroastrianism by about the time of Aristotle in the fourth century B.C.E.
The Zoroastrian theory of the origin of the world according to Bundhshn is
that Ormazd Ahura Mazda) and Ahriman were separated by the void although both
of them seem to have existed since eternity. It was to defeat Ahriman that Ormazd
created the world as a battlefield. He knew that this would be a limited fight
extending over 9000 years in accordance with an understanding between them. In
the first contest, Ormazd defeated Ahriman through the Ahuna Vairya prayer
(which is the most sacred prayer of Parsees) and as a result he lay prostrate for
another 3000 years, the second in a four? round contest. At the end of this period
he was stirred up by a prostitute, the primal woman, and he attacked again in the
material universe. Killing first the Prime Bull, whose marrow gave birth to the
plant and whose semen collected and purified in the moon, from which were
produced the useful animals, Ahriman then killed Gayomart, the primal man,
whose body produced the metals and from a part of whose semen preserved and
purified in the sun produced rhubab, from which the first human couple was born.
The first human couple was perverted by Ahriman and it was with the advent of
Zoroaster that the 3000-year-old Ahriman supremacy came to an end. From then
on Ormazd and Ahriman fight on equal terms until after 3000 years Ormazd would
ultimately triumph over Ahriman. Bundhshn also illustrates the cosmogony of man
as a miniature model world or microcosm, who is mortal since the attack of the
aggressor. However, he has five immortal parts in him: Ahu (life), Daena
(religion), Baodah (knowledge), Urvan (Soul), and Fravashi (pre-existent-souls);
the last being perhaps symbolic of the Greek as well as Egyptian and Iranian
concepts of the spirits of heroes.
Mazdean orthodoxy says that when Ormazd created the material world, he
first produced from infinite light a form of fire out of which all things were born.
This form of fire is "white, bright, round and visible from afar." Gayomart, the
primal man, was also conceived as spherical in the image of the sky. According to
the Pahlavi work Manushchihr, "Ormazd, the Lord of all things, produced from
infinite light a form of fire whose name was that of Ormazd himself and whose
light was that of fire." In spite of there being so much literature, scriptural as well
as
others
the
entire
cosmology
and
cosmogony
of
210
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
the cult is so very complicated, obscure and dubious that quite a lot of the
statements, philosophy and doctrines cannot be understood, being illogical and
mythical. About the ninth century C.E., there appeared a short-lived renaissance
movement when modifications to ward off some basic inconsistencies of faith
were tried to be introuduced through Zurvanism, Manichaeism and others in the
face of competition from other rational religions, particularly Islam. However, due
to the opposition of the Mazdean orthodoxy itself these had to face natural deaths,
having been dubbed as heretical for the reason that they had upset the entire earlier
concepts of the religion.
211
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
212
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
get dried on the tower and are disposed off by throwing them in the central well.
The mourning is on the fourth day when the soul is believed to have arrived at the
other world to appear before the judges and is a very solemn occasion.
There are few seasonal festivals (gahanbars): the day of remembrance of the
dead at the end of the year, Noruz, the new year festival in honour of Rapithwin,
who is the personification of noonday and summer, and the festival of Mithra or
Mehragan, which is celebrated with honour. Further, each day of the month and
each month of the year is dedicated to a specific diety.
Downfall of Zoroastrianism
Apart from schisms, mainly accommodation of intense dualism and deities as
well as priesthoods, Zoroastrianism lost its original appeal to the old adherents of
Iranian cults, because of there being not much to be gained spiritually, particularly
so after the Qadsiyah victory of the Muslims in the 635 C.E. over Persians
underYezdergerdid III of the Sasanid dynasty, when the Zoroastrian cult could not
be a match to the absolute montheism as well as dynamism of Islam. Therefore the
complete, rational, practical and dynamic philosophy offered by the new Islamic
order having attracted the followers of Zoroastrianism as well as other animist
cults in Iran in large numbers into the fold of the former, almost all those
polytheist cults including Zoroastrianism had become uprooted from the religious
scene of Iran by about 1000 C.E. However, some of the conscientious objectors
among the Zoroastrians-numbering about a hundred thousand or more of those
who had been left behind-found fit to migrate to the Indian subcontinent where the
religion survived but remained almost stagnant since confining itself to the two
port cities of Bombay and Karachi only, there having not much appeal to anyone
other than the born Zoroastrians to remain in the fold of the religion in India and
Pakistan.
213
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Chapter 14
Comparative Study
The Criterion
Human life consists essentially of three aspects: the physical body, the mind and
the soul. While the body and mind may be defined and identified as matter, the
soul cannot be. It may be felt only as a way to distinguish the living from the dead.
The body and mind exist such as long as the life is present in the shape of a
contained soul and both become useless the moment the soul departs. The natural
sciences investigate the body and mind as well as some kinetic and potential
aspects of soul that partake in the total life of the former two. While the scientific
process postulates certain theories based on philosophical concepts on matter and
cosmos and proves them through experiments producing uniform deductions,
philosophical concepts regarding soul and the secret of creations have so far
remained theories only, which cannot be proved scientifically. Even in the case of
scientific matters that had been considered as absolute facts for a long time, these
have been drastically modified subsequently as a result of gaining more and more
knowledge. Thus, when the twentieth century scientist looks back to his nineteenth
century predecessor, the laws and proofs, for example on the structure of the atom,
have changed so much that the atom which was even quite lately considered as
indivisible, has not only been shattered, but the theory of fundamental particles
developed recently has created a new dimension in the structure of matter
altogether. Moreover, the old concept of transmutation of elements of the lately
ridiculed alchemists has in fact become a total reality today. Similarly, even the
epoch making theory of relativity of Einstein has been challenged and in some
aspects been almost proved to be incorrect within a life time. However, the
knowledge on thought, life and soul still remains as confidential as ever before
even after the anthropologist's assessment of over a million years of human
existence.
It is a fact that the soul cannot be identified or imprisoned after a specific but
unforeseeable duration, during which time it keeps the body and mind a going
concern,
the
motive
force
driving
the
body
and
214
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
mind being the soul. The body has only one function, and that is to do substantive
work on the orders of the mind which has to take decisions of its own, the soul
remaining the force through which the agency of life enables both the mind and
body to function of their own in synchronism. What is called "conscience'' appears
to be an attribute of the soul, trying to guide the mind through directives called
criterionthe permissible "rights" and the objectionable "wrongs." Here comes the
question of what is right and what is wrong. A tangible definition of
right could be anything that is universally good for the individual as well as the
society and a similar definition of what is wrong could also be anything that is
universally bad for the human being and the society.
Thought, gratitude, anger, passion, love of everything that makes one's life
comfortable or pleasant, fear of any phenomena that seem to possess powers far
beyond one's own imagination and supposed to be capable of either causing benefit
or harm, an acute sense of selfishness by which one covets as much wealth and
other possessions as possible for one's own use, pride, accumulation of power and
authority over others, and so on are some of the important traits of the human
being. Of these, the faculty of thinking is the most important one by which, in
nature, a person discovers through his intuition what in fact are the safe limits for
the exercise of the various traits mentioned above, and even this discovery cannot
surface unless one is brought up and continues to live in society guided by certain
norms and limits acceptable to others. However, love, pride, selfishness and
passion generally do not let him subjugate himself easily to the dictates of others.
History has ample proofs that such a situation developing in more than one
individual has always given vent to wars and killing of fellow beings.
But, then, what is good for one human being and certain society could be bad
for another being and society according to the context faceing each. However, for
the evolution of a universal "one world society or in other words, a universal "one
world welfare state," such a disparity could be dangerous. For instance, while any
civilized society of today considers theft as bad on the one hand and assisting a
fellow being as good on the other, a society of thieves and cruel people do not
consider so. The question of morals thus depends solely on the environments of
each society. It is thus clear that if the responsibility of lawmaking or evolution of
the criterion between right and wrong is vested in the human society, uniformity
cannot be achieved. What is facing our present societies unfortunately in any part
of the world is the same basic turmoil that has existed over thousands of years in
the pastthe question of deciding what is naturally right and wrong for the human
being. By a sheer random chance, it has often happened that while
215
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
some criteria have coincided as far as several societies were concerned, many
others have remained either wide apart or even opposing, some instances being the
concept of so-called capitalism and socialism, certain ethics relating to the
relationship between man and woman, concept of God, crime and punishment, and
so on.
The twentieth century has after all found out that uniformity is needed in as
many aspects of life as possible and it was with this view that first the League of
Nations, and then the United Nations were formed with the participation of all
nations of the world. In spite of so much scientific and technological progress
achieved by the modern man and woman, quite a lot of differences do still exist
even on some essential aspects of international life, unable to be bridged by sane
discussion and consensus at the world forums, because all the decisions of each
society are based on what each considers right or wrong under specific biases in
their own way and therefore the views do not coincide. An international code
devised by a Super Force that controls and knows everything about the body, mind
and soul of each individual alone can, therefore, decide what is good or bad for
human beings as a whole both in near and far spaces of time. Therefore, if the
criteria of right and wrong for human beings and societies are laid down by such a
Force, then alone could the entire human beings be persuaded to accept such
criteria. Such a criteria shall then be in complete accordance with the nature and
cosmos around. Let us then investigate whether such criteria did exist at all in the
past and whether they still exist.
Irrespective of the fact whether the theory of "Evolution in Time and Space' or
'The Big Bang" has been responsible for the billions of things we see around on
earth and in the heavens, a human being invested with a thinking faculty cannot
but conjecture and conclude without any hesitation that, after all, without a creator
nothing could come into being. Whether this creator is called nature or God is not
what matters initially because we are now investigating, from the first principles,
this important power that provides credentials to life itself. No one can. therefore
dispute that there has been and there is a Force that has full control of the universe
in its entirety, creation, sustenance and end, and that this unique Force must have
existed without any change since the infinite past to the infinite future, or in other
words, without a beginning nor an end in time and space. Fundamentally, even a
small project that one may envisage requires quite a lot of planning and designing
before creation. An essential prerequisite of this planning is the knowledge of the
time and space that the creation has to survive. It is then only that all possible
safeguards can be built into it to ensure that, on the creation, the project in question
will
live
216
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
its planned life under safeguards not only without disturbing other projects in time,
space and compatibility, but also in supplementary unison with all other projects
around. What an extent of super planning, super designing and super knowledge of
shape of things to come in the infinite future of time and space must have gone
into this tremendously fabulous creation of cosmos consisting of the skies or the
Universe, of which our earth, although it occupies only a speck, has, however,
considerable varieties of life far more complex that what we have discovered since
the earth was inhabited by human beings, for how many thousands of years, no one
knows even to a near guess!
Having thus come to realize the greatness, superiority, all-powerfulness and
knowledge of time and space that must have been at the command of this Supreme
Planner of the universe, we can readily agree sensibly that none other than only
One Super Power could have been the initiator of the universe as a going concern
for the simple reason that coordination, harmony and perfection to the minutest
detail of everything we see around cannot have occurred if more than one Power
had controlled them as a whole. No doubt, after creation to an overall plan, we
may conceive that command as dictated by this Super Power is possible to be
vested with many a subordinate. However, while we assume this delegation, we
cannot forget that the planning, designing, creation, sustenance and the end of
everything lay at the personal command of the Supreme Power alone and none
else. The activities of the subordinates are confined to pure delegations of specific
jobs according to the pattern planned by the Supreme Power and not the delegate
who has no power to alter any course as originally set by the creator in accordance
with natural laws of the Supreme Power Himself. To make it clearer, it is like
nature's DNA system in human, plant, and animal cells, or a human-engineered
robot that performs wonderful tasks using its built-in sensors and computer
memory stores, which contain vast information. The robot itself has no power
whatsoever to change the preassigned tasks which are performed strictly within the
sphere of specific logic delegated by its maker. Clearly, we would consider it a
foolish fantasy if one were to think that this robot acquired its limited decisive
powers and capabilities independently, without the help of its makers, who retain
for themselves the absolute prerogative to alter the programmes in whatever
manner they consider necessary. This concept has been acknowledged, fortunately,
by all historic religions. Thus we have the first point of common agreement
between all religions of today. The second point of common agreement is that this
Supreme Power is called God, the One, but known with different names in
different
languages
Allah,
Brahman,
Yahweh,
217
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Mazda, and so on. The third common point among all religions is that God, in His
extreme mercy, has revealed His supreme guidance through selected human beings
who did live short or long as human beings fortified by miracles that no other
contemporary could excel. Reports about the miracles may, however, differ, as one
can understand.
Thus, no one should find trouble in accepting that every religion that has a
basic concept of Only One Super Power, God, as the Planner, Designer, Creator,
Sustainer and Disposer of the entire universe, had been also revealed by God to the
human beings of the respective ages through a man selected by Him out of the
mortal human beings of the respective age. For the same reason, it is also quite
reasonable to believe that each of the scriptures found with the adherents of the
various religions and attributed to prophets, great men, sages, and so on also had
their foundation in oral revelations or revealed books of God given to His
prophets. There is no difficulty in explaining their pollutions over the ages due to
poetic exaggerations, unfaithful transmissions orally as well as through incomplete
or unrealizable written records or even destruction. But, the very destruction or
pollution of any original is in itself a conclusive proof that it was not intended by
God to be a set of revelations that was anything but to last for a certain period and
not for all time. This is proven from the scriptures of Zoroastrianism, Hinduism,
Judaism and Christianity. Particularly so, because while the majesty of the
Supreme One God is preserved, the Law has become successively modified from
time to time through various prophets and messengers in the case of the children of
Israel from Moses to Jesus (peace be on him) and through various incarnations and
sages in the case of Hinduism, otherwise known as "Brahmanism." Thus, we have
at least the following two main common points as a basis for a comparative study
of the major religions of today:
i. Faith-in the Only One God, known by different names in different languages as
Allah, Brahman, Yhweh, Mazda and so on, who is the ultimate and undisputed
Supreme Power totally responsible for the planning, design, creation, sustenance
and end of all matter and energy known and unknown in the universe.
ii. Continuity of God's guidance to the human beings through revelations sent to
selected persons among them orally, through books, or both since this earth was
inhabited.
To a close student of the various religions, it should appear that the root of all the
revealed religions including Brahmanism lay in the wide area known as the Middle
East, comprising the territory of present Greece, Turkey, Syria, Palestine, Iraq, the
Arabian
Peninsula,
Egypt
218
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
and western Iran adjacent to Iraq. It is quite clear from the Old Testament and
New Testament of the Bible as well as the Quran that the various prophets from
Adam to Mohammed, including Noah, Abraham, Lot, Issaac, Jacob, Joseph,
Moses, Aaron, David, Solomon, Elijah, Jonah and Jesus Christ (Peace be on them
all) had all preached in this area and that they all died in the same area. It. is also
known that the Aryans migrated from central Asia and it is safe to assume that
when they had their temporary sojourn in Iraq and western Iran, they were exposed
to some of the doctrines about the Supreme God of the prophet Abraham (peace be
on him) who is mentioned in the Bible and Quran as the forerunner of the religion
of the children of Israel and the Muslims, whereby the very name of the custodians
of the scriptures among these migrating Aryans were and are even today known as
'Brahmanas," and their Supreme God as Brahman," which has no explanation
other than their being derived from this great founder prophet Abraham, or Ibrahim
(peace be upon him). It is stated in the early life story of this prophet that during
his search for the God of the universe, he refused to accept stars and planets
including the sun, and the variety of idols that his contemporaries in the present
region of Iraq considered as gods of convenience because he found all the celestial
bodies rising and setting and the idols could not help themselves. Thus it is said
that he came to the firm belief through reasoning that nothing other than the
creator and sustainer of all creations could be the Lord of the entire universe.
Perhaps the idol worship and the worship of various celestial bodies as well as
objects that inspired awe and surprise in the human mind, such as mountains,
rivers, the various powers of nature, and so on, was acquired by the migrating
Aryans first from the same regions of Iraq and Iran through which either they
passed on in which they made their temporary homes during their onward march to
the fertile Indus-Ganges plains of India, which had finally become their ultimate
home. The religion of Hinduism, thus although having its root most probably in
some of the ways of the prophet Abraham or Ibrahim (peace be upon him),
glimpses of which could still be found in Hindu Vedas, must have become polluted
by worship of the nature, idols and celestial bodies that had been prevalent in the
Middle East and India during olden times and retained as a traditional legacy up to
the present day. It cannot also be ignored that among other things, some of the
medieval and modern Hindu philosophers have also opined, perhaps rightly too,
that the Brahmanism of the Vedas is devoid of caste distinction and idol worship,
although in Hinduism as conceived and practiced by both Brahmans and the lower
castes in India as a whole in the past as well as today, these two ingredients have
been
built
into
the
Hindu
way
of
life
as
219
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
integral parts, perhaps as a long time legacy of a traditional way of life and culture.
Now, coming to the human life itself, it is accepted that a concept that does
not cover the aspects of growth of the mind as well as the body with full
cognizance of the salvation of soul cannot be a complete one, indeed. The
autonomy granted to the human being to conduct himself in this world satisfying
the essential needs of mind and body with the objective of emancipating the soul
or otherwise is undisputed by all prime religions. Most of the prime religions also
base their philosophies and ways of life on certain holy scriptures that are claimed
to be the law and words of God. However, the only dispute is in how to attain this
goal. Let us see how the various religions of today view these aspects and how far
their scriptures project themselves as the real laws of God preserved over the ages.
220
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
score, one worsens it during each recycling process in almost all cases. The drill
that has been prescribed by the Hindu philosophy for the improvement of one's
performance is, therefore, a forest life for good, until one dies there selfless
through the final process of solid penance, the last two of the four stages in the life
of human being, known as the "Vanaprastham" and "Sanyasam," respectively.
Even this formula gives a grim outlook on the process of redemption because the
slightest impurity left behind in the sanyasi or yogi (penitent) may lead to his soul
being rejected from union with the Supreme Essence, which is all pure,
necessitating rebirth to further purify it. But, as revealed by the Bhagavatgeetha,
"only extremely few yogis attain the goal of Mukthi (salvation)." If so, then what
about the very large majority of the people at large? No salvation at all? On the
other hand, taking for granted that the large majority of the human beings of any
age go into such a forest life to become penitents for good, seeking redemption,
how could the world continue as a living entity? It is thus clear that unless, firstly,
an element of mercy of God comes into play in the affairs of human beings and,
secondly, God, the Kind and the Benevolent, undertakes to pardon the sins of
every devotee in consequence of earnest repentance, amends and vows not to
repeat sins in the future intentionally it should be practically impossible for anyone
to attain the ultimate status of redemption through one's action (Karma). Then
again, what is left as a reward for those rare few who may, theoretically, be
considered as having crossed successfully the threshold of redemption? The Hindu
philosophy of the Geetha shows forth that the souls of such people get merged
with Godhood either by attaining equivalence with it or, maybe, becoming part and
parcel of God Himself (Geetha 5:24, 25; 7:27; 8:5), ending the limitless cycle of
rebirths (Geetha 8:16). However, the Geetha also confirms that the human beings
are born of either "divine" or "demoniac" nature (16:1-20) like the Ormuzd and
Ahriman concepts of Zoroastrian philosophy-that even the man of knowledge acts
in accordance with his nature because the beings follow their nature, and that
through abandonment of the threefold gateway of lust, anger, and greed by
following the declared rules of scripture (Geetha 16:21-24) even the lowborn,
women, Vaishyas and Shudras devoted to their own duty attain perfection and the
highest goal (Geetha 9:32; 18:45).
Nevertheless, the contradiction that is contained in the two differing viewsthat the person "born" with the demonic nature who is positively devoid of the
natural blessings of God can attain perfection in the same way that one born with
"divine" nature and with his own efforts against his born nature-appears to be a
quite
unrealistic
221
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
philosophy. However, even if a few people do get identified with God as the result
of redemption, getting dissolved in Godhood and leaving nothing but God Himself,
is it going to be any compliment to the majesty of God whose definition, even
according to the Geetha is ''Creator of life itself, ad infinitum?" If, on the other
hand, such redeemed souls continue to exist, having attained "equivalence" with
God, how can this anomaly of more than one God exist against the view of the
Geetha itself that there is only One Supreme God? Elsewhere, what is suggested at
16:14 of the Geetha, the worship of gods, the twice born, of teachers and the wise,
purity, uprightness, continuance and nonviolence are said to be the penance of the
body, is, in fact, in opposition to the oft-repeated directive of Krshna to worship
and rely on him alone as the Supreme God even above the conventional Brahman,
who too is designated as the Supreme one God of convenience (8:16), as pictured
at chapter 13 of the same Geetha.
Scientifically, too, it is not correct to assume that the matter and energy in
human and other creations get destroyed when, if as projected in the philosophy of
the Geetha that the redeemed souls get identified with Godhood without any
addition to Godhood, because this assumption is contrary to the scientific truths as
conceived by the human beings that nothing gets either created or destroyed
altogether, but a change in the state of existence only takes place. Nevertheless,
even for the sake of argument, it is conceded for a moment that the redeemed souls
get merged with Godhood, as is alleged, then Godhood must either have some
"vacancy,"' so to say, to absorb the extras or, at least, Godhood should get enriched
to some negligible extent in matter, energy, quantum and so on. But then is this a
rational concept about God, who is considered by all religions including the
Geetha philosophy as the Supreme Complete Essence wanting in nothing? Thus it
is seen that in Hindu philosophy, there appears to be no satisfactory explanation
that is capable of convincing the human mind scientifically, logically and
rationally about the purpose of and objective of life, the universe, the fate of the
human soul after death and ultimate shape of things after the soul gets redeemed.
The concepts on the important issues discussed above are almost the same as far as
Buddhism and Jainism are concerned, two offshoots of Hinduism.
The fantastic, unbelievable and varying stories of the creation of man and the
universe as detailed in the scriptural Vedas; the drills of paying divine homage in
homes and temples of worship to inanimate images and idols of multifarious gods
and goddesses supposed to represent "incarnations" and manifestations of
demigods who are considered as deputizing for the Supreme One God in purpose
and
intent
as
well
222
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
223
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
living the life of a mortal man or another creature; the permission granted,
although not as a directive, to worship gods and creatures other than the One God;
the sanction given to maintain the classes as born in nature, and so on, has also
indications in it not to reject it totally as a source of divine revelation. It is perhaps
as old as or even older than the Torah and the Gospels of Christ (peace be on him).
Although both were divine revelations, they had also been found to have been
polluted much from their possible originals due to the very long time factor as well
as deficiencies of oral transmission, the real originals having been lost. The
dialogue between Krshna and Arjuna appears in the Geetha as a third person
narrative, the author quoting the two; several centuries later as if he had been
present himself during the dialogue. It is an interesting literature on this score.
Therefore, and for the reasons given earlier, Krshna and the Geetha stand on the
same footing as Christ and the Gospels of Christianity, both being polluted as far
as the unity of the Almighty God is concerned. In both cases the two leaders of the
two scriptures claim oneness with the incomparable majesty and power of the One
God, one having been pictured as the God's incarnation and the other as the only
son of God.
Judaism
It has been seen from the chapter on Judaism that this religion, as projected by
the existing Torah, and which for all purposes is contained in the Old Testament of
the Christian Bible, is a stringent life of conquests to gain the "promised land" of
Palestine and retention of the territory by the twelve tribes Of the "Children of
Israel" and their descendants under the guidance of the only one God, Yhweh. In
fact, the history of the religion starts with the oppression of the people who were
the descendants of prophet Jacob (designated by God as Israel") by the Egyptian
Pharaoh and their rescue by prophet Moses, (Peace be upon him) through various
acts ending with the drowning of the oppressor king and his henchmen in the sea.
The people had multiplied in Egypt earlier; from the time when Joseph, Benjamin
and their stepbrothers along with their father Jacob (Peace be upon him), had
settled down in Egypt when Joseph had been the next in command of the Egyptian
king of his time.
In the religion there is a stress of great importance on the practice of undiluted
monotheism. However, application of all laws on crime, punishment and moral
values
affecting
social
life
is
preferential
to
the
224
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
twelve tribes of the children of Israel. For example, when it comes to the question
of lending money, while the community is forbidden from doing so on interest,
lending money on interest to the Gentiles (a term used for non-Israelites) is
permitted. Similarly, when a time limit of even years exists for slavery of a Jew, a
non-Jew may be kept as a slave for a lifetime, and so on. The various prophets,
champions, judges so on who are mentioned in the Old Testament had also been
sent by God during the long period of thirteen centuries or so between Moses and
Jesus (Peace be upon them) with the specific mandates of saving and guiding the
children of Israel back to the Law, when on each such occasion calamities and
destruction had visited them as punishment of breaking the covenant that their
forefathers had repeatedly made with God to be acute monotheists and just. An
essential aspect of Jewish religion is the strict class distinction ordered to be
maintained in society, by which the order consisting of the sons of Aaron assisted
by the members of the Levite family are to be priests exclusively over the rest of
the masses of Jews to conduct all ceremonials of the temple where the most
important of the religious functions ordained in the law centers around
performance of sacrifices.
Another important discriminating factor in the religion is that no other than
those who can show documentary evidence of being a progeny of the twelve tribes
of the children of Israel may either be admitted or may have a claim for admission
to the community of Jews, the simple reason that the Law of the Torah was
intended to be exclusively for them. According to the Torah, the children of Israel
are preferential people of God. It is for these reasons that in spite of the claim of
the Jews that their religious ancestry is forty centuries old, today they only
constitute a society of less than twenty million people, including a large number
who, on the issue of persecution by the communist regime of Russia, spread out in
the past as they are doing even today to other countries including Israel with a
claim to have belonged to this ethnic community irrespective of whether they had
uncontested titles to the claim on the basis of proven genealogy or not and got
distributed all over the world in small groups, the largest concentration among
them being in the state of Israel, with about three million only, and about seven
million all over the United States. In effect, the Jewish life is still a struggle for
preservation of the race as well as the proverbial holy land that their forefathers
possessed more than 2000 years ago.
Surely, a religion thus restricted to one particular ethnic race amounting for
only a negligible 0.50 per cent or less of the world population, excluding the huge
99.50
per
cent
or
more
of
the
rest
of
225
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
the humanity from entry into its fold cannot have any claim for becoming an
international religion and the way of life for all the peoples of the world. True,
Judaism also does not claim so.
Christianity
We have found earlier from the chapter on Christianity that while the
followers of Jesus Christ (peace be on him) claimed that the prophet had repealed
the Laws of the Torah, introducing new ones, on a close scrutiny of the New
Testament one cannot find any specific law at all, not to speak of any new law, on
matters relating to the various aspects of social life of human beings. On the other
hand, it is also agreed by them that the Old Testament in the Bible is left intact as
part of the Christian scripture because it contains some good points governing the
social life of man and woman. In fact, what is evident from these is that the
architects of Christian faith, adopted as such many years after the ascension of
Jesus Christ (peace be on him), having found no specific amended laws on social
life in the Gospels to be considered as divine ones, they had been forced to keep
the older Jewish laws to govern the life of the Christian society they invented.
On the matter of belief, although God in his essence is recognized by
Christianity as only one, being the Planner, Designer, Sustainer, and Disposer of
the universe and everything in it, the doctrine of the Trinity developed after Christ
on the "Father, Son, Holy Spirit, tie up, ascribing divinity to Jesus Christ and
attributing to him the exclusive sonship of God, has overshot the essential
objective of absolute monotheism. In later years, the doctrine took such a
dangerous shape that even God, the One, is sidetracked; Jesus, the son, and Mary,
the mother, have come into prominence almost as deities of worship and pardon.
The very belief that whatever sin a Christian believer commits, because of his faith
in Jesus (peace be on him) as not only the living son of God acting as and on
behalf of God but also as one with the prerogative to pardon any believer on and
behalf of God as the eternal living God among men, cannot be considered as a
belief any different from the Hindu concept of "Incarnation" of the supreme
"Brahman god in his Vishnu manifestation, particularly in the "Supreme Krshna
incarnation" who lived on earth in human form to be seen, worshipped, emulated
and to be sought as refuge for the redemption of soul by the human beings. It must
not be forgotten that the schisms such as the assignment of divinity to Jesus Christ
(peace be on him), the Virgin Mary, the Cross and saints based on the doctrine of
the
"Trinity"
as
226
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
well as the adoption of the name of "Christian" by the followers of the prophet
had all happened, not under any directive from the master to do so during his life
time, but long after his ascension on the basis of dreams, imaginations,
hallucinations and trance visions of the "living god Jesus" as a result of what is
known as "certain disciples and followers having been FILLED WITH THE
HOLY SPIRIT," a term continuously used by the followers since the prophet left
this mortal world. This, then looks as if there is a strange parallel system in
existence whereby Jesus Christ sends revelations to certain selected followers
called "saints" through the medium of the Holy Spirit, more or less in the same
manner as God himself had been sending his revelations to His prophets through
the archangel Gabriel. This very idea cannot be accepted as any different from
blasphemy for the simple reason that what Jesus Christ (peace be on him), the son
of Virgin Mary and the prophet of God, had taught and commanded under the
guidance of God during his short prophetic mission about God, faith and religion,
no disciple or follower had the authority to modify on the pretext of "conclusions
drawn as the result of trance-revelations as a result of the disciples, apostles and
followers having been filled with the Holy Spirit" as alluded to in the New
Testament records. Most important of all, it is rather beyond the imagination of an
intelligent person that he should believe that Jesus Christ, the prophet of God
(peace be on him) born to a human mother, Virgin Mary, is the only son of God
because of the fact that he was born without a human father when the Genesis of
the Old Testament, which forms the chapter of the very same Bible of the Christian
faith, declares that the first man, Adam (peace be on him), was created by God
Almighty "of dust from the ground" without there being the need of a father and
mother at all; surely our Christian brethren do not believe that Adam was the first
son of God and Jesus (peace be on him) the second! Instead, as clarified under the
chapter on Christianity, the New Testament records prove clearly that Jesus Christ
(peace be on him) himself had on various occasions referred to his disciples and
the audience about God as "your father and my father" in general terms, which
shows that in this respect he was no different from any other man. Further, there is
no positive uncontested proof that Jesus Christ, (peace be on him) the prophet of
God, had taken at any time the tenable risk of claiming for himself any divinity,
not to speak of ascribing to himself the status of "the only son of God" and the
prerogative of exercising the absolute power of God Himself to pardon "the
original sin of man" or the sins committed by a person after believing in him. It is
an entirely different matter worthy of belief that the way of life preached by Jesus
Christ
(peace
be
on
him),
the
227
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
great prophet of God, was one that could lead to the attainment of redemption and
forgiveness of sins committed by the followers if they repented of their past
mistakes; this prophet of God heralded the theme, "Repent, for the kingdom of
God is at hand!" The Gospels, as they exist today, but not the Acts, which are
accounts of history after the ascension of Jesus (peace be on him), prove that Jesus
Christ (peace be upon him) never repealed the "Old Laws" by any "New Laws''
because there are no "New Laws" at all found in them. So also, the claim of
Christians that Jesus Christ (peace be on him) "made all forbidden foods clean" is
not substantiated by the Gospels. Can the existing laws of any country, people or
society that are in cold print be replaced by any new laws except by repealing them
with specific new laws in lieu thereof, these also having been put into cold print?
Where are then these new Laws that the Christian Church claims the Gospels to
contain? The facts as testified by the reportings (Mark 7:14-21, Acts 10:9-16", 4448, and Acts:11:1-18) of the New Testament and other historical records clearly
show that declaring of all forbidden foods of the Torah as lawful to Christians,
throwing open of the Christian fold to the non-Israeli Gentiles, exemption granted
from circumcision to the Gentiles converting to Christianity, institution of church
and congregational worship in them, declaring of Sunday as the Sabbath instead of
Saturday of the Jews, naming of the followers of Christ as Christians, the edicts on
the acceptable versions of the Gospel as well as on the deification of Christ
through the Trinity institution and many other things were certainly schisms
adopted for promotion of vested interests after the ascension. It is also established
by the various Epistles in the New Testament and other historic records that the
evolution of "Christian Virtues," assignment of divinity to Mary as the "mother-of
God" and the saints, conferment of the Christian Ecclesiastic and saintly hierarchy
by the Church on any selected follower, making of confessions before the clergy
followed by assurance of pardon and redemption on behalf of Christ (peace be on
him) on the basis of "the Holy Spirit in the Church," administration of the
"Extreme Unction" at the time of death by the clergy assuring atonement of sin
through participation in the crucifixion of Christ (peace be on him), and so on were
all innovations introduced without any authority whatsoever from Jesus Christ
(peace be on him) under the able leadership of the antichrist Greek Jew, a Roman
national by name of Saul and later Paul or Saint Paul, who, on his way to
Damascus during the fourth decade after the ascension of Christ (peace be on him)
converted as a follower of Jesus Christ (peace be on him) as the result of a vision
of the prophet declaring in the synagogue that Jesus Christ (peace be on him) was
"the son of God! However, circumstantial evidence provided by the Epistles, Gos-
228
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
pels of the New Testament as well as the historical records and the prolonged
researches of some eminent scholar writers prompt also an impartial observer to
suspect, and logically too, that the myths of the crucifixion of Jesus (peace be on
him), the subsequent deification of the prophet and the mother Mary, the so called
supercession of Torahic laws by the new laws of the Gospels (there being no new
laws in fact), declaration of all foods forbidden by the Torah as clean for
Christians, exemption from circumcision for Christian converts from the Gentiles,
adoption of the theory of "one in essence but three in the person of God in Father,
Son and the Holy Spirit," naming the followers of Christ as Christians at Antioch,
substitution of Sunday for Saturday as Sabbath, and on the top of them all, as if to
add insult to injury, making the Old Testament (Pentateuch and the other divine
books of the Jews) itself the first and integral part of the Christian Bible, were
perhaps yet other acts of Jews pressed into service to discredit this last prophet of
the Children of Israel in the chain of their often repeated crimes as mentioned in
the Old Testament as well as the New Testament Gospels.
Nevertheless, even the Gospels, projected by the Church as the holy scripture
that was given by God to Jesus (peace be on him) in fact as stated before, do not
contain any specific "New Laws" on the lines of the "Old Law'' of the Old
Testament as found in the "Leviticus" "Numbers" and "'Deuteronomy" to replace
the old laws. Even the Gospel according to Barnabas does not contain any specific
law or directive that may be a replacement of the Torahic old laws. In the
circumstances, it could also be a logical conclusion that for the purpose of the
Law, the architects of the new schism named Christianity had no alternative but to
rely on the laws of the Old Testament only, after providing a few relaxations on
food, (like making lawful all forbidden foods), on circumcision, Trinity and so on
as they liked. There appears to be no other reason for making the Old Testament a
part of the Christian Bible in spite of the contention of the Christian church that the
Old laws had been modified by the Gospels. On the whole, there is nothing in the
New Testament to prove that the way of life that was actually preached and shown
by Jesus Christ (peace be on him) was not the same as was highlighted by his
forerunner prophets of the children of Israel, such as Moses, David, Solomon and
others (peace be on them). These having become corrupted through the ages at the
hands of the Pharisees, the Scribes, kings and high-handed people among the
Children of Israel, Jesus Christ (peace be on him) arrived with the Gospel to
correct them. Unfortunate it is that even this original Gospel also appears to have
been lost!
The Christianity that was evolved by Paul as its main architect after the
ascension of Jesus Christ (peace be on him) did get an impetus
229
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
in the early fourth century C.E. during the rule of the Roman emperor Constantine
I, the Great, who, though not a Christian himself, backed the movement as it suited
his political ambitions. It was thus that Christianity received his recognition and
support. Acceptance of Christianity by subsequent Roman emperors helped the
founding of a general council as a means of adjudicating on controversies. During
the era of "Doctrine and Discipline," the classical Christian dogmas of "Trinity"
and the person of God in Christ," which have been made the ruling criterion of
the Christian Church ever since, were thus developed from the decisions of these
general councils between the fourth and sixth centuries C.E.
The Christian doctrine evolved thereafter has its pivot in the conviction and
trust that God sent 'His son," Jesus Christ (peace be on him}, to earth to live a
human life, suffering like a human, to die for human redemption from sins and to
rise again, "gloriously." Accordingly, the statements that "Christ, the eternal son of
God, was equal with God, the Father," and that "God is One in essence, but three
in personsFather, Son and the Holy Spiritthe eternal son of God being truly
God by virtue of being truly a man, having been born of the Virgin Mary, form
essential parts of the first and second classic confessions respectively of the
Christian orthodoxy, at least since the Nicaean Council of 325 C.E. when the
Paulists won the battle of Trinity against the Unitarians whose leaders were,
among others, Barnabas whose version of the Gospel which negated the divinity of
Jesus Christ (peace be on him) which became objectionable thereafter, not to be
possessed by any Christian believer .
It is a fact of history supported by clear proofs that the Bible had been edited
and reedited by eminent scholars several times in the past and that additions,
corrections, modifications and restorations of earlier materials had been made in
later versions. While the changes had been at times confined only to correction of
language alone, there had been instances of making changes in the matter of
doctrines and history as well. Today different versions of the Bible are possessed
by different sects of Christians, one not recognizing the other versions at all. Even
in the four versions of the Gospel accepted by the Christian Church, differences
exist even on the genealogy of Jesus (peace be on him); which while Matthew has
derived through twenty-five ancestors from David to Joseph the carpenter
(Matt.l:6-16), Luke has traced back to David through forty ancestors, many with
different names and in two different lists of parentages altogether (Luke 3:23-31),
both the reporters supposed to have been inspired by God to write the Gospel!
Nevertheless, it is an irony that neither has been able to connect the
230
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
parentage of Jesus to David and Ibrahim (peace be on them) for the simple reason
that genealogy is derived from the father and not the mother. In the case of Jesus
(peace be on him), it is accepted that he had no human father, and that Joseph was
not his father at all for the reason that his miraculous conception through the will
of God had already taken place prior to the Virgin Mary's marriage to Joseph the
carpenter. Thus strictly speaking as per the Gospels, Jesus (peace be on him) was
not of the paternal stock of the Children of Israel, although Joseph was. These and
many other similar discrepancies and contradictions in the Bible, which have
already been highlighted earlier in the chapters on Christianity and Judaism, must,
no doubt, have shaken whatever faith had remained with the European and other
Christians, particularly of the eighteenth century and after, in the Bible and the
Christian doctrines of the Church.
Finally, on the big question of the life after death, the Gospels of the Bible
leave nothing even by way of contemplation. There is not even a hint in the four
Gospels that there is redemption for the human soul and what this redemption is
like. It was, perhaps, to satisfy the human appetite to know of this burning question
of a philosophy that the architects of Christianity had to evolve the theme of "Jesus
pardon" and consequent state of redemption of the soul. But it just stops at that
without giving any more information on this matter of the greatest importance to
the inquiring human intelligence. It is so important a question that the toiling
human being who tries his best to do only what is good, subjecting himself to all
difficulties and refraining from all possible temptations, would like to be sure of
whether or not all his efforts are of any real consequence to win a better
redemption in his favor as compared to another fellow being who had been always
succumbing to temptations and doing very little good deeds. Alas! The redemption
doctrine in Christianity is so vague that one is led to believe that to do good only is
not of any consequence because, in any case, anyone who just "believes in Jesus
Christ (peace be on him) is assured the redemption irrespective of his deeds for the
reason that as the Christian doctrine on the subject teaches, "Believe in Jesus and
you are redeemed" from the so-called "original sin" as well as your own sins
committed until death. Thus, to a Christian believer in Christ (peace be on him), as
the doctrine states, it is for the Christ (peace be on him) to answer or be
responsible for the sins committed by the former and not he himself, If this be the
case really, then what moral incentive is there for a person to be honest, kind,
considerate, compassionate, loving and so on, not generally easy on the one hand,
and for another to refrain from evils and sins on the other? However, the
231
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Gospels also say that Jesus (peace be on him) instead had been insisting that his
followers do good and refrain from evil. How did this discrepancy and
contradiction come up at all? The framers of the Christian doctrine have so far not
explained this grave matter as to why Jesus (peace be on him) himself had been
requiring his followers to refrain from committing sins if the blanket pardon and
redemption had been promised by him to every believer in him? Strange, indeed.
This is another important reason for concluding that the real Gospel of God that
was given to His prophet Jesus Christ (peace be on him) has not been handed down
in all its ORIGINAL form and content.
Naturally, the masses of the people had been steadily losing the spiritual
appeal of Christianity, as it fell too short of the requirements of the fully developed
human being for leading a commendable social life in the world now as well as in
the future-that is, it lacks a faith that does not contradict human reasoning, and a
philosophy on the redemption of the soul agreeable to human logic. It is also an
undeniable fact that all efforts of the human beings must be aimed at specific
objectives if they are not to go waste. Therefore, if the faith and way of life of the
human being are not aimed at the attainment of the two objectives of life referred
to above; it is a foregone conclusion that the lifelong efforts are wasted. What
Happens to the human being" and his soul after death is known only to God alone
who is the sole planner, designer and disposer of the universe, and to no one else.
Naturally, the two great secrets-namely what is the objective of life itself and what
happens to the human soul after death-are also known only to God. Therefore, in
order to live a full life that will take the human being to the right conclusion as
planned by God it is only right that the course set for him by God alone is chosen.
It thus becomes clear that a faith and way of life other than what are designed by
God, and revealed to the human beings through His selected messengers from
among men in any age and preserved in the form of an authentic and correct
document without undergoing any changes or alterations at the hands of even the
most intelligent of human beings alone can guide mankind to the desired objective
of life and redemption of the soul. Such a faith and way of life being in complete
harmony with the natural environments must succeed as they must be fully
satisfying to the logic and reason of the developed mankind as well. All others
must invariably fail, being unreal philosophies. This is what is happening to the
faith and way of life because they had been manufactured to a large extent by men
and not by God, a fact that has been already proved in the foregoing pages.
What had been happening of late, therefore, is that the aftereffects of the
Renaissance,
the
Industrial
Revolutionsuch
as
the
dissemina-
232
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
tion of knowledge through printing and the great strides made in the field of
scientific and technological discoveries in the nineteenth and twentieth centuries
continued to slowly erode the Christian faith, making it almost outdated, it being
inseparably linked to world views. The full impact of the implications of the
scientific discoveries, at least, have been tending towards making what little of the
"faith" that remained with the few believers also to become diluted, if not totally
extinct. The net result was that, particularly in Europe, where the Christian faith
was deep-rooted, the allegiance of the masses had shifted by the early part of the
twentieth century either to Communism or negation of religious values of any kind
altogether, for the reason that not very many really knew much about their own
faith, not to speak of other sister religions in the world. Honestly, even the very
few who knew about their own religion could not give any convincing dimensions
to their faith in the original sin of man, the Trinity, God in Christ, arbitrary
atonement, blanket pardon, the Holy Spirit in the Church and similar myths.
Notwithstanding, the Christian faith is a conviction about God, The Only One,
and a trust in the ways of God through the ways of Christ (peace be on him) based
on the divine revelation as a disclosure of these ways in the history of the Children
of Israel and of the unity of the church. The sheet anchor of this conviction and
trust is, though unrealistic enough, not very much different from that of other
polytheistic religions; God Almighty, commanding everything and causing
anything to happen through His sheer will alone, had to send '"His only son" (or
incarnation as in other faiths) to be born, brought up to live and die as any other
mortal, guide the common man and woman on the earth! How strange this faith
and trust appear to be when one contemplates dispassionately, using his
imagination supported by solid reasoning, whether the common man or woman
could ever be capable of emulating the standards set and shown in person, as is
alleged by Christianity and some religions, by either God Himself, or by an alleged
incarnation or a son of God, or even by an angel or superhuman being at all. God's
guidance to the human beings must arrive through none other than another similar
human being alone so that the latter may become an example and model for the
rest to easily emulate, the miracles only becoming a means to convince the
unbelievers of the prophet's credentials of being a messenger of God, acting not on
his own, but on the commands of God.
The foregoing detailed and critical analysis shows how, while the existing
Christian scriptures, religion, faiths and law, which in their original form, no
doubt, were from God, they are unconvincing, insufficient and unappealing to
reason
of
the
fully
developed
human
kind
233
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
of today and tomorrow for the reason that the various divine books in original such
as the Gospel of Jesus Christ, the Torah of Moses, the Psalms of David and the
criterions of the various other prophets of God between Moses and Jesus (peace be
on them) having got either lost or polluted had been replaced by man-made
substitutes. Because man's innovations are evolved not only under acute limitations
as far as even events of the present are concerned but also without any insight
being possible into the future time and space altogether, such potions can serve
only as pure and simple stopgap solutions. Thus, the formula and laws for the
attainment of a ideal welfare state based on a one world concept sufficient for all
timesa logically explainable universal philosophy and a just, reasonably sensible
process for the redemption of the human soul after deathare not available in the
Christian doctrine.
Zoroastrianism
234
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
and in attendance of the priests and Levites and the Vedic sacrificial rites with fire
performed by Hindus under the supervision of Brahmana priests.
As far as the Zoroastrian scriptures are concerned, the Manichaean work
Kephalaia in Coptic is known to contain a. passage that Zoroaster did not write any
books during his lifetime and the existing books attributed to him had been written
by his disciples and followers after his death. It is also said in the Parsee traditions
that about 500 B.C.E. there were probably, seventy sects each possessing its own
Avesta, each claiming reality and originality, and that therefore King Arthneskes
selected a committee of seven out of over eighty thousand scholars to produce a
standard Avesta. However, even this book is stated to have been extinct for a very
long time. Elsewhere it is also stated that the twenty books or so written by
Zoroaster himself were all lost during the conquest of Alexander the Great and that
it was under the direction of King Ardeshir Babekan that Dastur Tonsar compiled
the twenty-one volumes (Nasks) from whatever could be remembered from
memory. It is also stated that the first two volumes of the Dinkard (Act of the
Religion), an encyclopedia on Zoroastrianism in nine volumes compiled in the
ninth century C.E., are also lost. The eighth and ninth books of Dinkard discuss the
contents of the Avesta, which was also extinct at the time of the writing of the
Dinkard. Thus, from what information is available, it appears to be almost correct
to conclude that a large part of the original authentic books or preachings of
Zoroaster seems to have been lost and that perhaps, only some bits and pieces of
them have been left behind for the information of posterity. Further, no one may
also be sure as to which of the existing scriptures are the real ones or even parts of
Zoroaster's own original preachings for the reason that over the ages a number of
scriptural matter had been added by many scholars to available scriptural literature
of all ages. To this category belongs books such as the Dinkard, Smaller Avesta
and so on and even much of the Avesta except the Gathas, which are the only ones
unanimously attributed to the teacher himself, probably by almost all Zoroastrians.
Thus, as it would appear, the status of the Avesta too is on the same footing as the
Jewish Torah or the Christian Gospels as far as its authenticity, reliability and
originality as the revelations transmitted by God through Zoroaster are concerned,
if he is accepted as a prophet.
In any case, a Zoroastrian doctrine stands today, although it contains some
coherent ways for development of a materialistic human society, the dualism of
God in his two opposing characteristics of Ormuzd, the good force, and Ahriman,
the
evil
force,
both
having
equal
235
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
divine powers of God and the concept of Ahura Mazda being the father of the Holy
spirit, justice, right thinking and devotion as depicted in the Gathas and Yasna
respectively, do really undermine and contradict the concept of Ahura Mazda
being the highest one God worthy of worship. Further, the deification of the
Amesha Spentas mentioned in the Gathas, blood and Haoma sacrifice, the priestly
order, the peculiar method of disposal of the dead bodies as well as the
performance of funeral rites and, most of all, the myths on cosmogony, the
creation of man and other beings, which are neither appealing to logic nor reason
nor reconciling with scientific concepts, make the Zoroastrian religion far from
being a model to be emulated as a complete philosophy and way of life by the fully
developed mankind of today and tomorrow.
No wonder that the followers of the religion are negligible today in number
and even so confined only to the two cities of Bombay and Karachi in the IndoPakistan subcontinent although their religious ancestry is claimed to be 4000 years
old or more.
236
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
in general, human life in particular and the emancipation of the human soul except
to limited extent only, as the result of getting mixed up with Buddhism and
Hinduism. As we are in search of a religion that provides a total philosophy
offering solutions for all the essential problems of life arising while facing realities
of nature and the universe at all times based on divine guidance for leading a
wholesome life in the world with balanced growth of mind and body and most of
all with the hope for the salvation or redemption of the human soul after death,
none of these Far Eastern religions, some of which provide no insight into the
redemption question or the life after death at all, do not fulfill our requirement,
although probably 500 million or more people in the Far Eastern countries such as
China, Japan, Korea, Vietnam and others consider themselves belonging to one or
more or even all of the allied religions of Confucianism, Shintoism and Taoism
with a strong tint of Buddhism in particular, without many of them being strictly
dedicated to any of them specifically. To them, the main concern is comfortable,
peaceful and amenable social life modulated by the worship and adoration of
nature, environments, heroes and the souls of ancestors as well as an intense sense
of nationalistic patriotism but not much of spiritualism or thoughts about
philosophies such as what is the purpose of life or the universe and what happens
after death or even the concept of God and so on.
Most of the Far Eastern philosophies find real difficulties in reconciling with
the provings of science and logic of the fully developed mankind of today,
particularly on cosmogony and the creation of man. Moreover, most of them have
very seldom any stress on the firm belief in one God of the universe and His
adoration which, to put it mildly, is nothing but expression of simple gratitude to
the Great and Kind Creator of the universe and the benefactor of the intelligent
mankind in particular, an attitude that should spontaneously spring up from the
comprehending mind of the human being because this unique aspect has been built
into the specification of the human being. Thus, none of the Far Eastern religious
ways of life detailed above is found to be acceptable as a complete model that,
while containing a logical and realistic complete philosophy appealing to the
developed human mind and explaining the purpose of the creation of the universe
and human life in the world as well as what lay in store for the human beings after
death, also shows a practical and just methodology for the evolution of a real
welfare state for the entire mankind in any era of existence based on
internationalism, universal brotherhood, love and mutual respect.
237
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Communism
It has been seen earlier under its own chapter that Communism was the social,
economic and political system designed and created by certain people who, having
had either very scant knowledge of their own religion or practically no knowledge
at all of other religions that mattered, and therefore having gotten totally
disillusioned with then existing socio-economic and political systems to shape a
just socioeconomic society free from exploitation and oppression, tried on their
own to devise a new theoretical way of community life as best as they could
imagine. Unfortunately enough, the main architect of this system, Karl Marx, due
to his own social background and inherent spiritual limitations came to the wrong
conclusions, firstly that it was not the consciousness of men that determined their
existence but on the contrary it was their social existence that determined their
consciousness, and secondly that the past human history had always been a
struggle between one group of like-minded vested interests against another,
otherwise termed the class confrontation for existence; therefore, unless the
proletariat group succeeded in the "total elimination of the bourgeois and their
stooges a socio-economic welfare state of the working class was impossible to be
evolved and maintained., Clearly, one cannot but note that essentially neither the
architects Of the Communist order theory nor the creators of the order had any
belief in God. It is therefore that the Communist philosophy and the Communist
society have either ignored or totally eliminated God from the affairs of the human
being altogether. Only the materialistic aspect of life is the concern of the
Communist and he has no thoughts at all of any life after death. He considers that
life in this world is an affair concerning exclusively the law of nature depending on
the random logic of spontaneous birth, life and death but nothing beyond. Thus for
the Communist philosophy, man and woman are without any spiritual past, present
and future beyond the sphere of material life of the world. How sad it is that the
architects and followers of this strange philosophy have not been able to take
valuable lessons from the philosophy of science that without a purpose none of the
billions of objects that get born and destroyed in the universe, some seen and many
more unseen, and on which quite a lot of energy is being spent every moment had
been necessary at all. When man finds that he himself refuses to move a centimeter
unless there is a necessity for it, that he refuses to create anything himself unless
there is a purpose, use or reason for it and that nothing gets created without a need
for it and a maker for it, how can he remain contented by getting into an illusion
that
every-
238
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
thing found in the universe came on their own without an overall plan, purpose,
use or creator? If one reasons that the sun is for keeping life moving, what reason
can he assign to the necessity of having life at all? Is it a plan or for nothing?
Certainly not! It is sensible logic, therefore, that there is a purpose for creating
everything around and also there is a creator of them all who alone knows the
cause, reason and purpose of everything seen and unseen that exists in the
universe.
The life histories of the architects of the Communist theory and practice given
under the chapter on Communism have amply proved that each one of them had
forced themselves to land into the dreamland of Communist ideology due to their
own inability to deal with the realism of life, laziness and lack of knowledge of
any religion. Almost all of them had been failures in their practical lives. Particular
critical study of Karl Marx, the architect of Marxism, should convince any sane
person that during the nineteenth century when education was scanty, although
Marx had a law degree and there was no shortage of job opportunities in a Europe
that had none of today's movement restrictions, it is a wonder how he managed to
remain jobless spending nearly a decade of his life in destitute conditions in a great
city like London, where it is said he and his family had to live virtually on barley
and potatoes, living like a pauper, depressed and worried and seeing the death of
five of his children due to illness attributed to malnutrition and lack of money.
Still, his mania made him misread the human history as a class war between the
bourgeois (the middle class) and the proletariat (the poor wage-earning class). In
fact, one may easily read between the lines that Marx did not want to do hard
work, even in consideration of looking after his large family as a duty, and
therefore opted for the unfortunate alternative of living in poverty and hardship,
himself being responsible for the death of some of his children due to illness
accountable to malnutrition. This tragedy cannot be categorized as anything short
of the height of his laziness, cruelty, irresponsibility, lethargy and what not.
Critical study of the life histories of almost all Communist leaders of the time will
convince that none of them really wanted to work the hard way of a peasant,
factory worker or even a white collar person for earning enough to pay for two
square meals a day for themselves and dependents although each of them had been
paying lip service to the hardships and exploitation undergone by the proletariat by
the bourgeois with the objective of starting a perpetual class war in the society. It
must not be forgotten that if the planners and the architects of Marxism and
Communism were sincere and honest in their search for a philosophy aimed at
even a purely materialistic welfare state, there was enough guidance and directions
to
evolve
one
239
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
on the basis of true love of the neighbors, help and assistance to the poor, doing
goodness for goodnesss sake, feeding the poor, healing the sick, and so on, which
were and are considered as virtues essential for evolution of a good materialistic
society by all human beings, and found in the Ten Commandments and the Sermon
on the Mount of the Bible which, if not as believers in Christianity, at least as
educated and scholarly persons, should have been known to every one of them
who were brought up in Christian background at least. However, these were
disregarded by them altogether, obviously because the Marxist and Communist
leadership could have realized that in that event they would not have been able to
get exclusive distinction as the originators of the idea and become the bosses of the
new show.
No doubt, there had been other reasons also to play up the idea of
confrontation and class war. In fact, the European society of the eighteenth century
being imperialistically inclined, conquest of the Asian, African and South
American continents by the European colonialists with the object of exploiting the
former's wealth end raw materials through global trading companies financed and
supported by banks, capitalists and rulers of Western nations had been in progress.
This, in turn, created rivalry among the Western nations such as the Germans, the
Dutch, the Spanish, the Portuguese, the British and many others causing atrocious
and destructive wars, counter to the teachings of Christianity. The financing as
well as the soldiery of these wars had, naturally, to be done by the masses of the
conquering nations through taxation and supply of men under duress. The clergy
class, particularly of Tsarist Russia, who had been depending heavily on the huge
contributions of the capitalists to the Christian charities for keeping the poor
masses happy to some extent through payment of doles, had also found it
convenient not only to keep quiet but even to encourage the war efforts in the hope
of spreading the church religion far and wide deep into Asian, African and
American continents. To add fuel to the fire; the Renaissance and Industrial
Revolution had already sparked off the quest for knowledge and spread of
liberalism, particularly as the result of the earlier invention of the printing press,
and the consequent spread of literature among the masses making them
disillusioned and critical as they started questioning the many unrealistic doctrines
of the Church. The cumulative effect of these forces had been that with the spread
of knowledge, the educated masses who had hitherto been forced to take for
granted many a tradition, ways and faith propagated by the Church, having found
no logical explanation in support of the myth-like faith and doctrines, had started
not to believe them anymore. The support of the capitalists and imperialists by the
clergy also became responsible for the dislike of the latter and
240
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
the Church by the masses. The time was thus ripe for a switch over to acute
materialism and unilitarianism in Europe through acceptance of the revolutionary
ideals of Communism aimed at evolution of a purely materialistic welfare state
controlled exclusively by the proletariat, eliminating the bourgeois altogether, and
highlighting the dogmas such as "the religion is the opium of the people," "the end
justifies any means," and so on.
Thus, Communism prospered year by year until, perhaps, at least more than a
third of the present-day world population has become either Communist or
subscribes to its ideology or is sympathetic to the ideology, rightly or wrongly.
Nevertheless, the image this movement has been able to create in the minds of
people at large after its field trial is that in spite of the regimented discipline
backed by tremendous military power, technocrats, huge finances, vast natural
resources, scientists, specialists all working together with modem technology and
under dedicated supervision of the party hierarchy the Communist world of Europe
has not even been able to overcome shortage of food grains during the Communist
party dictatorship of the last sixty-five years, not to speak of the shortages in other
socio-economic areas. The only aspect it has been able to fulfill so far is selfsufficiency in the production of destructive weapons and war materials as well as
subjugation of other nations for the sake of spreading Communism in the world.
Thus the trek along the field trial of the new Communist ideology during the last
sixty-five years even in one important materialist sector of socioeconomic
development by a huge mass of world population has proved to be a failure,
demonstrating without any doubt that Marxism and Communism have serious
deficiencies in their philosophies even in the field of evolution of a welfare state
embracing only a small part of the world population.
Further, as the Marxist-Communist ideology does not even consider the divine
aspect of existence of God and as it has no concern about what happens to the
human soul after death or about the purpose either of the human life or the
universe. it does not serve as a complete philosophy showing a way of life to cover
the physical and spiritual growth of the mankind at par with a revealed religion.
Islam
As has been found earlier from the detailed discussion on the religion of Islam
under the chapter of its own, it consists of a faith, belief and a living methodology
both for the individual and the society embodying a philosophy of mutual
consideration
and
brotherly
love
241
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
among the peoples of the world irrespective of race, color, positions or affluence
so as to attain eternal salvation of the human soul during the life after death on the
basis of one's own good deeds and mercy of Allah, the Only One God of Creation
and sustenance of the universe. The structure of the society is built on the firm
edifice of good thoughts, words and actions of the individual so as to make a
wholesome society, nation and one-world community, for which criteria have been
laid down by none other than Allah Himself through the Quran, which is believed
as the final book of Allah, revealed to his last of the prophets, Muhammad
(Blessings of Allah and peace be on him). It is, no doubt, a real blessing to
mankind that He made Islam the final religion through His last of prophet and His
final book, confirming and completing the real revelations bestowed on earlier
prophets because through this process He has warded off for all time from the
believers the state of indecision that could have enveloped them if yet other
prophets of God were to arrive, for all those who believed in a false prophet or
who did not believe in true prophets would have gone astray as it happened with
the Children of Israel. Thus Muslims have the divine assurance that no more
prophets or divine books will be sent to them after the last prophet Muhammad
(Blessings of Allah and peace be on him} and the final book of revelations, the
holy Quran.
As far as the Muslim faith is concerned, it is the logical concept that the
Planner, Designer, Sustainer and the Disposer of the entire universe is the only
One Allah above any materialistic conception, All Powerful, Omnipotent,
Omniscient and the Master of time and space, who is the Present only, shares
His supreme power with none, the concept being unique for maintenance of serene
majesty and order in the whole universe. He sends His guidance to mankind
through revelations to His selected prophets of superior qualities among men only
so that other fellow creatures may easily emulate them, and not any supernatural
beings total emulation of whom is an impossibility for the common human-being.
The God Allah, of Islamic concept is merciful, kind, just and extends His pardon
repeatedly to the devotees who promise not to err intentionally after repenting. The
philosophy of Islam says that mankind has been created for no purpose other than
worshipping Allah and that everything in the universe has been created for the
benefit of the life of the human being on earth. The norms of conduct of the
Muslim in all walks of life in this world have been standardized and spelled out in
detail in the holy Quran and these, supplemented by the directives and actions of
the holy prophet Muhammad (Blessings of Allah and peace be on him) should be
sufficient to evolve a total welfare state in the world at all times with all races
242
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
sharing the prosperous life as equal brothers and sisters without discrimination but
with the ultimate objective of winning salvation of the soul on the basis of
individual effort during the only one span of life in this world and the mercy of
Allah, the salvation being a carefree full life in an entirely different form
altogether.
Islam advocates peace for self, peace for the society, peace for the nation,
peace for the whole world and finally peace for the Muslim during the eternal life
after death. While Islam negates compulsion in religion, it ordains all possible
kinds of opposition to injustice and even war in the interest of just preservation of
the Islamic society until tumult and oppression cease. Toleration of other religions
that do not interfere with the peaceful life of Muslims is a cardinal principle of
Islamic philosophy on the ground that if Allah had desired so, He would have
made every one of the human beings a Muslim, Thus the philosophy of Islam
stresses the point that, subjected to the worldly environment, a Muslim must find
his right way towards the salvation of soul, following the directives of the religion
wherever one is obliged to live.
Islam encourages acquisition of all kinds of right knowledge needed for
enabling a Muslim and the nation to live in this world rightfully, and doing fruitful
research to unveil the wonders of nature in order to make the faith of the Muslim
stronger as well as to subjugate the powers of nature (Al-Quran, 45:13) to make
life comfortable within reasonable limits avoiding all kinds of excesses and with
humility. Hints provided in the Quran about some of the unknown secrets of
creationsuch as the evolution of the universe from smoke in stages stretching
over thousands of years; the cleaving asunder of the heavens and earth, which were
earlier one single unit joined together; the subsequent readjustment of the earth and
seven firmaments to form a harmonious system; the dynamical function of the
mountains as balancing weights to avoid undesirable gyratory motions of the earth
during its spin and course through its trajectory; the creation of the first man from
clay; the subsequent creation of the first woman as his partner to procreate the
human species in natural evolutionary process until his perfection; process of the
creation of the human species from blood in various stages until the birth of the
newborn and many other basic facts of nature had not been visualized by the
scientists even in the domain of theories until the time when the Quran was
revealed to the unlettered prophet of Islam. It is also a fact that most of the theories
developed up to this day on such topics are yet unconfirmable as well as
inconclusive conjectures on which the world of modern science has differing
views, all yet unproven! The object of the Quran in providing
243
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
some clear basic concepts on such issues may be appreciated as an effort on the
part of Allah to ward off conjectures and to provide the human beings positive
starting points for conducting further useful research and investigations standing
on sound and valid ground in order to strengthen the inquiring mind of the fully
developed human being of the greatness of the One and Only One almighty Allah,
the Creator of the universe, as well as to encourage the human effort in the
direction of understanding some of the secrets of nature for his own benefit and to
realize his own puniness as compared to the mightiness of the All Powerful Allah.
The personal and social laws, of Islam are objective to save the society from
crimes and to make it safe for everyone to live in peacefully. The prohibitions
placed on some foods like certain kinds of meats and intoxicants have biological
and social implications affecting the health of the person and the society about
which the scientists have been able to know much, lately, to clear their earlier
misgivings. It is interesting to note that some of the prohibitions on foods, similar
in nature, are in the Torah of the children of Israel too. It is undeniable that the
character of creatures is, to a great extent, governed by the genetics, food, and so
on. The philosophy of Islam; therefore; takes it as a matter of faith, and rightly too,
that Allah, who is the creator of human beings as everything else too in the
universe, alone knows what biological changes leading to exhibition of what
character by the human being may take place on account of eating what kind of
food. Apart from matters of faith, codes governing maintenance of law and order;
family; succession to property; what is good and bad; the relationship between the
ruler and the ruled; dealings between Muslims and non Muslims; worship and
remembrance of Allah; economics; dealings between individuals; rights and duties
of individuals; total relationship between the rich and the poor on the one hand and
the employer and the employee on the other; crime and punishment; human
behavior on any occasion; contracts and agreements; war and peace; the one world
welfare state; and in short, every essential aspect of the life of man, woman and the
society has been prescribed justly by Islam in such clarity and unambiguity,
applicable to any situation, any time, that it is impossible to find any aspect either
uncovered or that cannot be covered by the application of a reasonable extension
of existing codes in the Islamic Shariah. It may be emphatically claimed therefore
that there is no other religion or even way of life in the world that can take this
important challenge of Islam. It is a matter of great distinction to Islam that in
acknowledgment of the honour of the human being, Islam has enjoined on every
Muslim
1400
years
ago
when
mankind
had
not
even
244
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
realised that equality and freedom were the birth rights of human beings, that any
human being was equal and free as any other in the eyes of Allah and that there
was no compulsion in religion. These cardinal principles could be discovered by
the elite human forums of this century only. Complete brotherhood and equality
between any Muslim and another ably demonstrated by Muslims all over the world
when they pray in congregation five times a day, shoulder joined to shoulder, the
first to come occupying the forward positions without any distinction based on
status, position, wealth, color or race and during performances of pilgrimage rites
at holy Makkah when all males are to wear the same kind of dress (a set of two
unstitched pieces of cloth only with the head exposed) for a few days without
exception sleeping in almost the same type of tents or in the open, sharing every
facility available there without grumbling, nay, with a smile at each other in
complete submission to the call of Allah and with complete brotherly equality and
devoid of any distinction or prejudice on account of position, status, race or color,
cannot but impress the thoughtful and intelligent world community of the high
standard of practical toleration, equality and fraternization that has been built into
the philosophy of Islam. This is the reason why Allah has stated in the holy Quran
that Islam is the religion with Allah.
245
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Chapter 15
Conclusion
The earnest and sincere endeavour of the author has been to provide a
complete pen picture of all the existing religions and important ways of life
that exist today based on the scriptures and other important books on them
written by famous authorities with a view to enable the reader to have a
detailed understanding of the philosophies and standard practices of each,
together with explanations, and analysis of the more important aspects of
each. Further, the author has tried his level best to quote references of relevant
books, mainly scriptures, as felt necessary and to base his criticisms on
specific quotations from the scriptures in order to assure the reader if need be.
It is thus the duty of the readers to satisfy themselves that what they are being
told is authentic. As facts remain facts always, the question of
misunderstanding the motive of the author should not arise.
From the detailed exposition of all the available facts that the author has
been able to obtain from scores of reference books as well as his own
experience over the last fifty-five years of his life as a conscientious person
receptive of the knowledge found everywhere he travelled or lived,
associating with people from different walks of lifestudents, teachers,
officials, workers, priests, doctors of religions and philosophy, industrialists,
moneylenders, businessmen, physicians, religious scholars, and so onhe has
been absolutely convinced of the fact that if there is any religion and way of
life that has a realistic philosophy appealing to reason and embraces the total
life of the mankind covering any field of his activitythoughts, work,
contentment, social behaviour, internationalism, to cite a few onlyand
encourages the human being to live a full lifespan reconciled with nature and
proving of science and with hope for attainment of a logically just salvation of
the human soul after death, it is youngest of all the revealed religions, which
is Islam, the religion of peace. If only Islam is accepted as the religion of the
world
communities,
we
have
all
the
246
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
247
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
this world and an ideal, realistic, logical, scientific, convincing and hopeful
concept on the much-sought of salvation of the human soul after death in such
detail as the Islamic philosophy. As far as other philosophies are concerned,
there are no internationally acceptable and applicable norms that may be
applied to all nations of the world of today and tomorrow without making
drastic modifications. Then the next questions would be which, and will it be
then complete and standard, applicable for all time? The firm answer is No.
In the field of salvation, other philosophies tend to lead mankind either to an
endless chain or no thought of anything after mans one span of life in this
world. In the area of faith and belief, Islam provides a real contrast in the
supremacy of the unique One and Only One God, Allah, the absolute Lord of
all matter, time and space, as well as without limitations of any kind
whatsoever, not only capable of administrating the entire realm of past,
present and all future without the need of any helper, but also pardoning sins
over and over again and answering direct the calls of devotees without and
intermediary because He is nearer to them than their own jugular veins.
Creation of any matter or action He contemplates follows on His unique order
of Be and It is there!. As compared to this sophisticated concept, we have
the faiths and beliefs of some other religions and ways of life that attribute
deputies to God in various forms, who are to be propitiated, befriended and
worshipped in one form or other for one or more ends followed by a bleak
and a terrible future life, one following another ad infinitum until one finally
lives a fully rectified and atoned life without the least tint of Gods pardon
possible, which is nothing but a fantasy. Some other religions and
philosophies offer a blanket pardon and salvation of the human soul to anyone
who has faith in it, while others do not simply bother about any eternal life
after death, or even of God or of anything happening after death altogether.
The atheists and Communists on the other hand totally negate God and
judgment, contending that the life of human being is a matter of random and
natural chance with no post-existence. Thus everyone on the crossroads of
faith and action has to carefully consider all aspects fully and decide for
himself what he wants, and therefore the great religion of Islam avers rightly,
There is no compulsion is religion; the truth stands out from the falsehood.
Let not the intelligent contemporary wonder what all the erstwhile
followers of this great religion of Islam have done so far to evolve a model for
the world. Let me make it absolutely clear that the past history of Islam has
no doubt set wonderful examples of the Islamic pattern of complete life, at
least during the lifetime of its prophet (Blessings of Allah and peace be on
him)
and
during
a
few
decades
248
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
249
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
250
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Bibliography
Abdullah, Yousuf Ali, Holy Quraan. English Translation and Comentary, 1972.
Adams, Charles J., editor. A Reader's Guide to tbe Great Religions, 1965.
Adikaram, E. W. Early History of Buddhism in Ceylon, 1946.
Alchin, B. and R. Alchin. The Birth of Indian Civilisation, 1938.
Alder, Vera Stanley. The Finding of the Third Eye, 1937.
Ameer Ali, Syed, The Spirit of Islam, 1935.
Anderson, J. N. D. Islamic Law in the Modern World, 1959.
Anesaki, M. History of Japanese Religion, 1963.
Ansari, F.R. Islam and Western Civilization, 1963
Anwar Ali, Syed. Religion, The Science of Life, 1974.
Arberry, A.J. The Koran Interpretted, 1964.
Sufism, 1950.
Armstrong, Hamilton Fish. Tito and Goliath, 1951.
Arthur, Jeffery. Islam: Muhammad and His Religion, 1958.
Aston, W. G. Shinto, The Way of the Gods, 1905.
Aurobindo, Sri. Essays on tbe Gita., 1928.
Avineri, Shlomo. The Social and Political Thoughts of Karl Marx, 1968.
Ayisha Bawany Trust. The Gospel of Barnabas, 1980.
Ayyar, C. V. Origin and Early History of Saivism in South India, 1936.
Baber, M. M. Karl Marx's Interpretation of History, 1948.
Bailie, John. Our Knowledge of God, 1959.
Banton, Michael, editor. Anthropological Approaches to Religion, 1966.
Barnett, L.D. The Bhagavadgita. 1905.
Barth, Karl. Church Dogmatics, 4 vols., 1936-1969.
Bellah, Robert N. Beyond Belief, 1970.
Belle, K. W. The Pesistence of Religion, 1965.
Benz, Ernest. Buddhism or Communism: Which Holds the Future of Asia ?, 1966.
Berdyaev, N. A. The Origin of Russian Communism, 1937.
Berger, Peter. The Social Reality of Religion or the Sacred Canopy,
1969.
251
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Aqeedah 301
253
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com
Aqeedah 301
Aqeedah 301
Aqeedah 301
Aqeedah 301
Aqeedah 301
Aqeedah 301
Aqeedah 301
260
bais.islamiconlineuniversity.com